Produced by Charles Bowen, from page scans provided by Google Books






Transcriber's Note:

   1. Page scan source:
      http://books.google.com/books?id=BO4wAAAAYAAJ






                         THE HEART OF DENISE

                           AND OTHER TALES






[Illustration: "DE CLERMONT GAVE MADAME AN INTERESTING ACCOUNT OF THE
DEFENCE OF AMBAZAC MADE BY HER HUSBAND AGAINST THE PRINCE OF CONDÉ"
Page 39]






                         The Heart of Denise

                           and Other Tales





                                  BY
                           S. LEVETT-YEATS

                 _Author of "The Chevalier d'Auriac_,"
                   "_The Honour of Savelli," etc_.





                               NEW YORK
                       LONGMANS, GREEN, AND CO.
                          LONDON AND BOMBAY
                                 1899






                         Copyright, 1898, by
                           S. LEVETT YEATS.

                              *   *   *

                        _All rights reserved_.





                 ROBERT DRUMMOND, PRINTER, NEW YORK.






                              CONTENTS.


THE HEART OF DENISE.

       I. M. de Lorgnac's Price.

      II. The Oratory.

     III. The Spur of Les Eschelles.

      IV. At Ambazac.

       V. M. Le Marquis Leads His Highest Trump.

      VI. At the Sign of the Golden Frog.

     VII. Unmasked.

    VIII. Blaise de Lorgnac.

      IX. La Coquille's Message.

       X. Monsieur le Chevalier is Paid in Full.


THE CAPTAIN MORATTI'S LAST AFFAIR.


       I. "Arcades Ambo."

      II. At "The Devil on Two Sticks."

     III. Felicità.

      IV. Conclusion--The Torre Dolorosa.


THE TREASURE OF SHAGUL.


THE FOOT OF GAUTAMA.


THE DEVIL'S MANUSCRIPT.


       I. The Black Packet.

      II. The Red Trident.

     III. "The Mark of the Beast."


UNDER THE ACHILLES.


THE MADNESS OF SHERE BAHADUR.


REGINE'S APE.


A SHADOW OF THE PAST.





                         THE HEART OF DENISE




                              CHAPTER I.

                        M. DE LORGNAC'S PRICE.


One afternoon I sat alone in the little anteroom before the Queen
Mother's cabinet. In front of me was an open door. The curtains of
violet velvet, spangled with golden lilies, were half drawn, and
beyond extended a long, narrow, and gloomy corridor, leading into the
main salon of the Hôtel de Soissons, from which the sound of music and
occasional laughter came to me. My sister maids of honour were there,
doubtless making merry as was their wont with the cavaliers of the
court, and I longed to be with them, instead of watching away the
hours in the little prison, I can call it no less, that led to the
Queen's closet.

In the corridor were two sentries standing as motionless as statues.
They were in shadow, except where here and there a straggling gleam of
light caught their armour with dazzling effect, and M. de Lorgnac, the
lieutenant of the guard, paced slowly up and down the full length of
the passage, twisting his dark moustache, and turning abruptly when he
came within a few feet of the entrance to the anteroom.

I was so dull and wearied that it would have been something even to
talk to M. de Lorgnac, bear though he was, but he took no more notice
of me than if I were a stick or a stone, and yet there were, I do not
know how many, who would have given their ears for a _tête-à-tête_
with Denise de Mieux.

I ought not to have been surprised, for the lieutenant showed no more
favour to any one else than he did to me, and during the year or more
I had been here, enjoying for the first time in my life the gaieties
of the Court, after my days in apron-strings at Lespaille, my uncle de
Tavannes' seat, I had not, nor had a soul as far as I knew, seen M. de
Lorgnac exchange more than a formal bow and a half-dozen words with
any woman. He was poor as a homeless cat, his patrimony, as we heard,
being but a sword and a ruined tower somewhere in the Corrèze. So, as
he had nothing to recommend him except a tall, straight figure, and a
reputation for bravery--qualities that were shared by a hundred others
with more agreeable manners, we left Monsieur L'Ours, as we nicknamed
him, to himself, and, to say the truth, he did not seem much
discomposed by our neglect.

As for me I hardly noticed his existence, sometimes barely returning
his bow; but often have I caught him observing me gravely with a
troubled look in his grey eyes, and as ill-luck would have it, this
was ever when I was engaged in some foolish diversion, and I used to
feel furious, as I thought he was playing the spy on me, and press on
to other folly, over which, in the solitude of my room, I would stamp
my foot with vexation, and sometimes shed tears of anger.

This afternoon, when I thought of the long hours I had to spend
waiting the Queen's pleasure, of the mellow sunlight which I could see
through the glazing of the dormer window that lit the room, of the
gaiety and brightness outside, I felt dull and wearied beyond
description. I had foolishly neglected to bring a book or my
embroidery, so that even my fingers had to be still, and in my utter
boredom I believe I should have actually welcomed the company of
Catherine's hideous dwarf, Majosky.

It had come to me that perhaps M. de Lorgnac, who had, no doubt, a
weary enough watch in the corridor, might feel disposed to beguile a
little of his tedium, and to amuse me for a few minutes, and I had
purposely drawn the curtains and opened the door of the anteroom so
that he might see I was there, and alone, and that the door of the
Queen Mother's cabinet was shut. I then, I confess it, put myself in
the most becoming attitude I could think of, but, as I have said
before, he took not the slightest notice of me, and walked up and
down, _tramp_, _tramp_, backwards and forwards as if he were a piece
of clockwork--like that which Messer Cosmo, the Italian, made for
Monsieur, the King's brother.

I began to feel furious at the slight--it was no less I
considered--that he was putting on me, and wished I had the tongue and
the spirit of Mademoiselle de Chateauneuf, so that I could make my
gentleman smart as she did M. de Luxembourg. For a moment or so I
pulled at the silken fringe of my _tourette-de-nez_, and then made up
my mind to show M. de Lorgnac that the very sight of him was
unpleasant to me. So I waited until in his march he came to a yard or
so from the spot where he regularly turned on his heel, and then,
springing up, attempted to draw the curtains across the door. Somehow
or other they would not move, and de Lorgnac stepped forward quietly
and pulled them together. As he did this our eyes met, and there was
the twinkle of a smile in his glance, as if he had seen through my
artifices and was laughing at them. I felt my face grow warm, and was
grateful that the light was behind me; but I thanked him icily, and
with his usual stiff bow he turned off without a word.

I came back to my seat, my face crimson, my eyes swimming with tears,
and feeling if there was a man on earth that I hated it was the
lieutenant of the guard.

It had a good two hours or so to run before my time of waiting would
be over, and I may take the plunge now, and confess that the
lengthened period of attendance to which I was subjected, was in a
measure a punishment, for my having ridden out alone with M. de
Clermont, and, owing to an accident that befell my horse, had not been
able to return until very late. The ill-chance which followed all my
girlish escapades was not wanting on this occasion, with the result,
that whereas ten others might have escaped, I was observed in what was
after all but a harmless frolic, and my conduct reported on--and
Madame, who had a weak enough eye for follies, and sometimes
sins, that were committed by rule--she loved to direct our
ill-doings--rated me soundly and imposed this penance, and perhaps the
worse punishment that was to follow, on me.

In the anteroom there was but a cushioned stool for the lady in
waiting, and this was placed close to the door, so that one could hear
Queen Catherine calling, for she never rang for us, as did the
Lorrainer for even such ladies as the Duchesse de Nemours, the mother
of Guise.

I pushed the seat closer towards the door and, hardly thinking what I
was doing, leaned my head against the woodwork and dropped off into a
sort of troubled doze. How long I slept in this manner I cannot say;
but I was suddenly aroused by the distinct mention of my name,
followed by a laugh from within the cabinet. I looked up in affright,
for the laugh was the King's, and for the moment I wondered how he had
passed in, then recollecting the private passage I knew that he must
have come in thence. I would have withdrawn, but the mention of my
name coupled with the King's laughter aroused my curiosity, and I
remained in my position, making, however, a bargain with my conscience
by removing my head from the carved oak of the door. It was my duty to
be where I was, and although I would make no effort to listen, yet if
those within were talking of me, and loud enough for me to hear, I
thought it no harm to stay, especially as it was Henri who was
speaking, for I knew enough to be aware that no one was safe from his
scandalous tongue. I may have been wrong in acting as I did, but I do
not think there is one woman in a thousand who would have done
otherwise, supposing her to be as I was--but one-and-twenty years of
age.

So thick, however, was the door, that, my head once removed, I could
hear but snatches of the converse within.

"It is his price, Madame," I heard the King say, "and, after all, it
is a cheap one, considering her escapade with de Clermont. _Morbleu!_
But he is a sad dog!"

And then came another surprise, for the gruff voice of my uncle, the
Marshal de Tavannes, added:

"Cheap or dear! I for one am willing that it should be paid, and at
once. She has brought disgrace enough on our house already. As for the
man; if poor he is noble and as brave as his sword. He is well able to
look after her."

"If he keeps his head," put in the King, whilst my ears burned at the
uncomplimentary speech of my guardian, and my heart began to sink.
Then came something I did not catch from Catherine, and after that a
murmur of indistinct voices. At last the King's high-pitched tones
rose again. It was a voice that seemed to drill its way through the
door.

"Enough! It is agreed that we pay in advance--eh, Tavannes? Send for
the little baggage, if she is, as you say, here, and we will tell her
at once. The matter does not admit of any delay. St. Blaise! I should
say that after thirty a man must be mad to peril his neck for any
woman!"

I rose from my seat trembling all over with anger and apprehension,
and as I did so the Queen Mother's voice rang out sharply:

"Mademoiselle de Mieux!"

The next moment the door opened, and the dwarf Majosky put out his
leering face.

"Enter, mademoiselle!" he said, with a grotesque bow, adding in a
rapid, malignant whisper as I passed him, "You are going to be
married--to me."

At any other time I would have spared no pains to get him punished for
his insolence; but now, so taken aback was I at what I had heard, that
I scarcely noticed him, and entered the room as if in a dream. Indeed,
it was only with an effort that I recollected myself sufficiently to
make my reverence to the King. He called out as I did so, "_Mordieu!_
I retract, Tavannes! I retract! Faith! I almost feel as if I could
take the adventure on myself!"

A slight exclamation of annoyance escaped the Queen, and Tavannes said
coldly:

"Perhaps your Majesty had better inform my niece of your good
pleasure," adding grimly, "and I guarantee mademoiselle's obedience."

There was a minute or so of silence, during which the King was, as it
were, picking his words, whilst I stood before him. Majosky shuffled
down at Catherine's feet, and watched me with his wicked, blinking
eyes. I do not remember to have looked around me, and yet every little
detail of that scene will remain stamped on my memory until the day I
die.

Madame, the Queen Mother, was at her secretary, her fingers toying
with a jewelled paper-knife, and her white face and glittering eyes
fixed steadily on me, eyes with that pitiless look in them which we
all knew so well, and which made the most daring of us tremble. A
little to my right stood de Tavannes, one hand on the back of a chair,
and stroking his grizzled beard with the other. Before me, on a
coffer, whereon he had negligently thrown himself, was the King, and
he surveyed me without speaking, with a half-approving, half-sarcastic
look that made my blood tingle, and almost gave me back my courage.

In sharp contrast to the solemn black of Catherine's robes and the
stern soldierly marshal was the figure of the King. Henri was dressed
in his favourite colours, orange, green, and tan, with a short cloak
of the same three hues hanging from his left shoulder. His pourpoint
was open at the throat, around which was clasped a necklet of pearls,
and he wore three ruffs, one such as we women wear, of lace that fell
over the shoulders, and two smaller ones as stiff as starch could make
them. He wore earrings, there were rings on his embroidered gloves,
and all over his person, from his sleeves to the aigrette he wore on
the little turban over his peruke, a multitude of gems glittered. On
his left side, near his sword hilt, was a bunch of medallions of
ladies who had smiled on him, and this was balanced on the other hand
by an equally large cluster of charms and relics. As he sat there he
kept tapping the end of one of his shoes with a little cane, whilst he
surveyed me with an almost insulting glance in the mocking eyes that
looked out from his painted cheeks.

The silence was like to have become embarrassing had not Catherine,
impatient of delay, put in with that even voice of hers:

"Perhaps I had better explain your Majesty's commands;" and then
without waiting for an answer she went on, looking me straight in the
face--

"Mademoiselle. In his thought for your welfare--a kindness you have
not deserved--the King has been pleased to decide on your marriage.
Circumstances necessitate the ceremony being performed at once, and I
have to tell you that it will take place three hours hence. His
Majesty will do you the honour of being himself present on the
occasion."

This was beyond my worst fears. I was speechless, and glanced from one
to the other in supplication; but I saw no ray of pity in their faces.
Alas! These were the three iron hearts that had sat and planned the
Massacre.

The Queen's face was as stone. The King half closed his eyes, and his
lips curled into a smile as if he enjoyed the situation; but my uncle,
within whose bluff exterior was a subtle, cruel heart, spoke out
harshly:

"You hear, mademoiselle! Thank the King, and get you gone to make
ready. I am sick of your endless flirtations, and there must be an end
to them--there must be no more talk of your frivolities."

Anger brought back my courage, and half turning away from Tavannes, I
said to the Queen:

"I thank the King, madame, for his kindness. Perhaps you will add to
it by telling me the name of the gentleman who intends to honour me by
making me his wife."

"_Arnidieu!_ She makes a point," laughed the King.

"She shall marry a stick if I will it," said de Tavannes; but Madame
the Queen Mother lifted her hand in deprecation.

"It is M. de Lorgnac," she said.

"De Lorgnac! De Lorgnac!" I gasped, hardly believing my ears. "Oh,
madame! It is impossible. I hate him. What have I done to be forced
into this? Your Majesty," and I turned to the King, "I will not marry
that man."

"Well, would you prefer de Clermont?" he asked, with a little laugh;
but de Tavannes burst out:

"Sire! This matter admits of no delay. She shall marry de Lorgnac, if
I have to drag her to the altar."

"Thank you, monsieur," I said with a courtesy; "it is kindness itself
that you, the Count de Tavannes, peer and marshal of France, show to
your sister's child."

He winced at my words; but Catherine again interposed.

"Mademoiselle! you do not understand; and if I hurt you now it is your
own fault. Let me tell you that for a tithe of your follies
Mademoiselle de Torigny was banished from court to a nunnery. You may
not be aware of it, but the whole world, at least our world, and that
is enough for us, is talking of your affair with de Clermont, who, as
you well know, is an affianced man. It is for the sake of your house,
for your own good name, and because you will do the King a great
service by obeying, that this has been decided on, and you must--do
you hear?--must do as we bid you."

She dropped her words out one by one, cool, passionless, and brutal in
their clearness. My face was hot with shame and anger, and yet I knew
that the ribald tongues that spared not the King's sister would not
spare me. I, the heiress of Mieux, to be a by-word in the court! I to
be married out of hand like a laundress of the _coulisse!_ It was too
much! It was unbearable! And to be bound to de Lorgnac above all
others! Was ever woman wooed and wed as I?

I burst into a passion of angry tears. I went so far as to humble
myself on my knees; but Henri only laughed and slipped out by the
secret door, and de Tavannes followed him with a rough oath.

"Say this is a jest, madame!" I sobbed out to the Queen. "I am
punished enough. Say it is a jest. It must be so. You do not mean it.
It is too cruel!"

"No more is happening to you than what the daughters of France have to
bear sometimes."

"That should make you the more pitiful, madame, for such as I. Let me
go, madame, to a nunnery--even to that of Our Lady of Lespaille--but
spare me this!"

"It is impossible," she said sharply. "See, here is Madame de Martigny
come, and she will conduct you to your room. Tush! It is nothing after
all, girl. And it will be better than a convent and a lost name. Do
not make a scene."

I rose to my feet stunned and bewildered, and Madame de Martigny put
her arm through mine, and dried my eyes with her kerchief.

"Come, mademoiselle," she said, "we have to pass through the corridor
to gain your apartment. Keep up your heart!"

"I offer my escort," mocked the dwarf, "and will go so far as to
take M. de Lorgnac's place, if your royal pleasure will allow--ah!
ah!"--and he broke into a shriek, for Catherine had swiftly and
silently raised a dog-whip, and brought it across his shoulders as he
sat crouching at her feet.

"Begone!" she said. "Another speech like that and I break you on the
wheel!" Then she turned to Madame de Martigny.

"Take her away by the private door. She is not fit to see or be seen
now. Tell Pare to give her a cordial if she needs it, and see that she
is ready in time. Go, mademoiselle, and be a brave girl!"




                              CHAPTER II.

                             THE ORATORY


You who read this will please remember that I was but a girl, and that
my powers of resistance were limited. Some of you, perhaps, may have
gone through the same ordeal, not in the rough-and-ready way that I
had to make the passage, but through a slower if not less certain
mill. The result being the same in both cases, to wit, that you have
stood, as I did, at the altar with vows on your lips that you felt in
your heart were false.

A thought had struck me when I was led back to my room, and that was
to throw myself on the mercy of de Lorgnac. But means of communication
with him were denied to me by the foresight of my persecutors. Even my
maid, Mousette, was not allowed to see me, and Madame de Martigny,
though kindness itself in every other way, absolutely refused to lend
herself to my suggestion that she should aid me, if only to the extent
of bearing a note from me to my future husband, in which I meant to
implore him, as a man of honour and a gentleman, not to force this
marriage upon me. I then tried Pare, who, by the Queen's command, had
been sent to me. He brought me a cordial with his own hands, and to
him I made my request, notwithstanding all Madame de Martigny's
protests, to carry my note to de Lorgnac. He listened with that acute
attention peculiar to him, and answered:

"Mademoiselle! I have not yet discovered the balsam that will heal a
severed neck--you must excuse me."

When he left, Madame de Martigny tried to comfort me in her kindly
way.

"My dear," she said, "after all it is not so very terrible. I myself
never saw M. de Martigny more than twice before we were married, and
yet I have learned to love him, and we are very happy. Believe me!
Love before marriage does not always mean happiness. In five years it
will become a friendship--that is all. It is best to start as I did,
so that there will be no awakenings. As for de Lorgnac--rest you
assured that monsieur is well aware of the state of your mind towards
him, else he would never have taken the course he has adopted. Be
certain, therefore, that all appeal to him will be in vain!"

I felt the force of the last words and was silent, and then de
Clermont's face came before me, very clear and distinct, and with a
sob I broke down once again and gave way to tears.

I will pass over the rest of the time until I found myself ready for
the ceremony, noting only with surprise, that I was to be married in a
riding-habit, as if the wedding was to be instantly followed by a
journey. Unhinged though I was, I asked the reason for this, but
Madame de Martigny could only say it was the Queen's order, and I
honestly believe she had no further explanation to offer.

At the door of the oratory the marshal met me, and led me into the
chapel, which was but dimly lighted, and where my husband that was to
be, was already standing booted and spurred, ready, like myself, to
take to horse. There were a dozen or so of people grouped around,
and one seated figure which I felt was that of the King. I made a
half-glance towards him, but dared not look again, for behind Henri's
chair was de Clermont, gay and brilliant, in marked contrast to the
sombre, if stately, figure of de Lorgnac.

At last the time came when I placed a hand as cold as stone in that of
my husband, and the words were spoken which made us man and wife. When
it was all over, and we had turned to bow to the King, de Clermont
stepped forward and clasped a jewelled collar round my neck, saying in
a loud voice, "In the King's name," and then, aided by the dim light,
and with unexampled daring, he swiftly snatched away one of my gloves,
which I held in my hand, with a whisper of "This for me."

Henri spoke a few jesting words, and then rising, left the chapel
abruptly, followed by de Clermont; but those who remained, came round
us with congratulations that sounded idle and hollow to me. It was
then that I noticed for the first time that Catherine was not present,
although I saw Queen Margot, and Madame de Canillac there. The
marshal, however, cut the buzz of voices short.

"The horses are ready, de Lorgnac, and, as arranged, you start
to-night. And now, my good niece, adieu, and good fortune be with you
and your husband."

With that he bent, and touching my forehead with his stiff moustache,
stepped back a pace to let us pass.

As I walked by my husband's side, dazed and giddy, with a humming in
my ears, there came back to me with a swift and insistent force, the
words of the vows, which, if I had not spoken, I had given a tacit
assent to. They were none the less binding on this account. Two of
them I could not keep. One cannot control one's soul, and I felt that
in this respect my life would be henceforth a living lie; but one I
thought I might observe, and that was the oath to obey; yet even in
the short passage leading from the oratory to the entrance to the
chapel, my heart flamed up in rebellion, and, with a sudden movement,
I withdrew my hand from my husband's arm, and biting my lips till the
blood came, forced myself to keep by his side. He made no effort to
restrain me, spoke never a word, until we came to the door where the
horses were waiting, with half-a-dozen armed and mounted men. Here de
Lorgnac turned to me, saying, almost in a whisper, "May I help you to
mount?"

I made a movement of my hand in the negative, and he stepped back; but
the animal was restive, and at last I was forced to accept his aid. As
we passed out of the gateway, riding side by side, I spoke for the
first time.

"May I ask where you are going to take me, Monsieur de Lorgnac?"

He answered, speaking as before, in low tones, "I thought you
knew--you should have been told. We go first to the house of Madame de
Termes."

Like lightning it came to me that the man was afraid of me. I cannot
say how I knew it. I felt it, and made up my mind to use my advantage,
with a vengeful joy at being able to make my bear dance to my tune. I
therefore broke in upon his speech.

"Enough, monsieur! I should not have asked the question. It is a
wife's duty to obey without inquiry."

I looked him full in the face as I said this coldly, and he touched
his horse with the spur and rode a yard or two in front of me,
muttering something indistinctly. But my heart was leaping at the
discovery, and I inwardly thanked God that it was to Madame de Termes
we were to go, for apart from the fact that both she and her husband,
whose lands of Termes marched with mine, had been life-long friends of
our house, she was one whom I knew to be the noblest and best of
women. I was not aware that she was known to de Lorgnac; but I hid my
curiosity and asked no questions, and there was no further speech
between my husband and myself until we came to our destination. As we
entered the courtyard of the Hôtel de Termes all appeared to be bustle
and confusion within, and the flare of torches fell on moving figures
hurrying to and fro, on saddled horses and packed mules, and on the
flash and gleam of arms. My surprise overcame my resolve of silence,
and I asked aloud, "Surely Madame de Termes is not leaving Paris?"

"News has come that the Vicomte is grievously ill in his government of
Périgueux, and Madame is hastening there."

"And we travel with her? There! It is impossible, monsieur, that I can
face so long a journey without some preparation. It is cruel to expect
this of me."

"It is the King's order that we leave Paris to-night, and I have done
my best."

"Say your worst, monsieur; it will be more correct," and then we came
to the door. We appeared to be expected, for we were at once ushered
up the stairway into a large reception room, where Madame stood almost
ready to start, for her cloak was lying on a chair, and she held her
mask in her hand. She came forward to meet us, but as the light fell
on my face, she started back with a little cry:

"You, Denise--you! My dear, I did not know it was you who were to
travel with me. You are thrice welcome," and she took me in her arms
and kissed my cold cheek. "I was but told," she went on, "that a lady
travelling to Guyenne would join my party, which would be escorted by
M. de Lorgnac. But what is the matter, child? You are white as a
sheet, and shiver all over. You are not fit for a long journey."

"M. de Lorgnac thinks otherwise, madame."

"Blaise de Lorgnac! What has he to do with it?" and the spirited old
lady, one arm round my waist, turned and faced my husband, who stood a
little way off, fumbling with the hat he held in his hand.

"It is a wife's duty to obey, madame, not to question."

I felt her arm tighten round my waist, and I too turned and faced de
Lorgnac, who looked like a great dog caught in some fault.

"A wife's duty to obey!" exclaimed Madame; "but that does not concern
you. Stay! What do you mean, child?"

"I mean, madame, that I was married to M. de Lorgnac scarce an hour
ago."

Her hand dropped from my side, and she looked from one to the other of
us in amazement.

"I cannot understand," she said.

"It is for my husband to explain," I said bitterly. "It is for the
gentleman, to whom we are to trust our lives on this journey, to say
in how knightly a manner he can treat a woman."

And there de Lorgnac stood, both of us looking at him, his forehead
burning and his eyes cast down. Even then a little pang of pity went
through me to see him thus humbled, so strangely does God fashion the
hearts of us women. But I hardened myself. I was determined to spare
him nothing, and to measure out in full to him a cup of bitterness for
the draught he had made me drink.

"Speak, man," exclaimed Madame. "Have you no voice?"

"He works in silence, madame," I burst in with an uncontrollable gust
of anger; "he lies in silence. Shall I tell you what has happened?
I, Denise de Mieux, am neither more nor less than M. de Lorgnac's
price--the hire he has received for a business he has to perform for
the King. What it is I know not--perhaps something that no other
gentleman would undertake. All that I know is that I, and my estates
of Mieux, have become the property of this man, who stands before us,
and is, God help me, my husband. Madame, five hours ago, I had not
spoken ten words to him in my life, and now I am here, as much his
property, as the valise his lackey bears behind his saddle."

"Hush, dear--be still--you forget yourself," and Madame drew me once
more to her side and turned to my husband.

"Is this true, Blaise de Lorgnac? Or is the child ill and raving?
Answer, man!"

"It is," he answered hoarsely, "every word."

In the silence that ensued I might have heard my glove fall, and then
Madame, with a stiff little bow to my husband, said, "Pray excuse me
for a moment," and stepped out of the room. He would have held the
door for her, but she waved him aside, and he moved back and faced me,
and for the first time we were alone together.

In the meanwhile I had made up my mind. I had repeated parrot-like the
words that it was my duty to obey. I had vowed to follow my husband
whithersoever he went; but vow or no vow I felt it was impossible, and
I spoke out.

"Monsieur, you stand self-convicted. You have pleaded guilty to every
charge I have made. Now hear me before Madame comes back, for I wish
to spare you as much as possible. I have been forced into this
marriage; but I am as dead to you as though we had never met. I
decline to accept the position you have prepared for me, and our paths
separate now. Would to God they had never crossed! I shall throw
myself on the protection of Madame de Termes, and at the first
opportunity shall seek the refuge of a convent. You will have to do
your work without your hire, M. de Lorgnac."

He made a step forward, and laid his hand on my cloak.

"Denise--hear me--I love you."

"You mean my château and lands of Mieux. Why add a lie to what you
have already done? It is hardly necessary," and I moved out of his
reach.

His hand dropped to his side as he turned from me, and at the same
time Madame re-entered the room.

"Monsieur," she said, "I fear the honour of your escort is too great
for such as I, and I have arranged to travel with such protection as
my own people can give me. As for this poor girl here, if she is
willing to go with me, I will take the risk of the King's anger--and
yours. She shall go with us, I say, and if there is a spark of honour
left in you, you will leave her alone."

"She is free as air," he answered.

"Then, monsieur, you will excuse me; but time is pressing."




                             CHAPTER III.

                      THE SPUR OF LES ESCHELLES.


De Lorgnac was gone. Through the open window overlooking the
courtyard, that let in the warm summer evening, we heard him give an
order to his men in a quick, resolute voice, far different from the
low tones in which he had spoken before, and then he and his troop
rode off at a rapid trot in the direction, as it seemed, of the Porte
St. Honoré. I could hardly realize that I was free and that de Lorgnac
had resigned me without a struggle. All that I could think of was that
he was gone, and with a quick gasp of relief I turned to my friend.

"Oh, madame! How can I thank you? What shall I say?"

"Say nothing to me, my child, but rather thank the good God that there
was a little of honour left in that man. And now, before we start, you
must have some refreshment."

"I cannot--indeed, no. I am ready to go at once. I want to put leagues
between me and Paris."

"You must be guided by me now, Denise," and as she spoke a servant
brought in some soup and a flask of wine. Despite my protests I was
forced to swallow something, though I felt that I was choking; yet the
little Frontignac I drank, I not being used to wine, seemed to steady
my shaking limbs and restore my scattered faculties.

As we put on our cloaks and demi-masks preparatory to starting, Madame
de Termes kept saying to herself, "I cannot understand--Blaise de
Lorgnac to lend himself to a thing like this! I would have staked my
life on him. There is something behind this, child," and she put a
hand on each of my shoulders and looked me full in the eyes. "Have you
told me all--have you withheld nothing?"

"Has he not himself admitted what I said, madame? If that is not
enough I will add every word of what I know;" and as we stood there I
detailed what I have already told, forcing myself to go on with the
story once or twice when I felt myself being unnerved, and finishing
with a quick, "And, madame, I was taken by storm. Indeed, I hardly
know even if this is not some frightful dream."

"Would it were so," she said, and added, "Denise, I believe every word
you say; and yet there is something behind de Lorgnac's action. I know
him well. He would never lend himself to be the tool of others. Once,
however, at Périgueux you will be safe with the Vicomte and myself,
and it will be a long arm that would drag you thence--nothing short of
that of the Medicis. But Catherine owes much to de Termes; and now let
us start."

What was my surprise when we reached the courtyard, to hear my maid
Mousette's voice, and I saw her perched on a little nag, already
engaged in a flirtation with one of the men. When I spoke to her she
pressed her horse forward and began hurriedly:

"I was sent here with Madame's things," she said. "I am afraid the
valises are but hastily packed, and much has had to be left behind;
but Madame will excuse me, I know; it was all so quick, and I had so
little time."

"Thank you, Mousette," and I turned to my horse, her address of Madame
ringing strangely in my ears.

We were, including Madame de Termes' servants, who were well armed, a
party of about twelve, small enough to face the danger of the road in
those unsettled days, but no thought of this struck me, and as for
Madame de Termes, she would, I do believe, have braved the journey
alone, so anxious was she to be by the Vicomte's side, for between
herself and the stout old soldier, who held the lieutenancy of
Périgord, there existed the deepest affection.

As we rode down the Bourdonnais, I could not help thinking to myself
how noble a spirit it was that animated my friend. Not for one moment
had she allowed her own trouble to stand in the way of her helping me.
Her husband, whom, as I have said, she dearly loved, was ill, perhaps
dying, and yet in her sympathy and pity for me, she had let no word
drop about him, except the cheery assurance of his protection.
Nevertheless, as we rode on, she ever kept turning towards Lalande,
her equerry, and bade him urge the lagging baggage animals on. Passing
the Grand Chatelet, we crossed the arms of the river by the Pont au
Change, and the Pont St. Michel, and kept steadily down the Rue de la
Harpe towards the Porte St. Martin. We gained this not a moment too
soon, for as the last of the baggage animals passed it, we heard the
officer give the word to lower the drawbridge and close the gates. The
clanking of the chains, and the creaking of the huge doors came to me
with something of relief in them, for it seemed to me that I was safe
from further tyranny from the Hôtel de Soissons, at any rate for this
night.

As we passed the huge silhouette of the Hôtel de Luxembourg, we heard
the bells of St. Sulpice sounding Compline, and then, from behind us,
the solemn notes rang out from the spires of the city churches.
Yielding to an impulse I could not resist, I turned in my saddle and
looked back, letting my eyes run over the vast, dim outlines of the
city, so softened by the moonlight that it was as if some opaque,
fantastic cloud was resting on the earth. Above curved the profound
blue of the night, with here and there a star struggling to force its
way past the splendour of the moon. All was quiet and still, and the
church bells ringing out were as a message from His creatures to the
Most High. I let my heart go after the voices of the bells as they
travelled heavenward, and had it not been for Mousette's shrill tones,
that cut through the quiet night and recalled me to myself, I might
have let the party go onwards, I do not know how far. As it was, I had
to bustle my little horse to gain the side of Madame de Termes once
more. It was not, of course, our intention to travel all night. That
would have been impossible, for it would have entailed weary horses,
and a long halt the next day; but it was proposed that we should make
for a small château belonging to Monsieur de Bouchage, the brother of
the Duc de Joyeuse, which he had placed at Madame de Termes' disposal,
and there rest for the remainder of the night, making a start early
the next morning, and then pressing on daily, as fast as our strength
would allow. Lalande had sent a courier on in advance to announce our
sudden coming. We did not expect to reach de Bouchage's house until
about midnight, and the equerry was fussing up and down the line of
march, urging a packhorse on here, checking a restive animal there,
and ever and again warning the lackeys to keep their arms in
readiness, for the times were such that no man's teeth were safe in
his head, unless he wore a good blade by his side.

We were, in short, on the eve of that tremendous struggle which,
beginning with the Day of the Barricades, went on to the murder of the
Princes of Lorraine on that terrible Christmastide at Blois, and
culminated with the dagger of Clement and the death of the miscreant
whom God in His anger had given to us for a king.

Already the Huguenots were arming again, and it was afloat that the
Palatine had sent twenty thousand men, under Dhona, to emulate the
march of the Duc de Deux Ponts from the Rhine to Guyenne. It was said
that the Montpensier had gone so far as to attempt to seize the person
of the King, swearing that once in her hands, he would never see the
outside of four walls again, and rumours were flitting here and there,
crediting the Bearnnois with the same, if not deeper, resolves.

Things being so, the land was as full of angry murmurs as a nest of
disturbed bees; the result being that the writ of the King was almost
as waste paper, and bands of cut-throat soldiery committed every
excess, now under the white, then under the red scarf, as it suited
their convenience.

It was for this reason that Lalande urged us on, and we were nothing
loath ourselves to hasten, but our pace had to be regulated by that of
the laden animals, and do what we would our progress was slow.

Madame and I rode in the rear of the troop, a couple of armed men
immediately behind us. Lalande was in front, and exercised the
greatest caution whenever we came to a place that was at all likely to
be used for an ambuscade.

Nothing, however, happened, and finally we set down to a jogging
motion, speaking no word, for we were wearied, and with no sound to
break the silence of the night except the shuffling of our horses, the
straining of their harness, and the clink of sword sheath and chain
bit.

Suddenly we were startled by the rapid beat of hoofs, and in a moment,
a white horse and its rider emerged from the moonlit haze to our
right, coming as it were straight upon us. Lalande gave a quick order
to halt, and I saw the barrel of his pistol flashing in his hand; but
the horseman, with a cry of "For the King! Way! Way!" dashed over the
road at full gallop, and sped off like a sprite over the open plain to
our left.

"Did you hear the voice, Denise?" asked Madame.

"Yes."

"It is stranger than ever," she said, and I could make no answer.

There was no doubt about it. It was de Lorgnac; and instead of going
to the Porte St. Honoré as I thought when he left us, he must have
crossed by the Meunniers and come out by the St. Germains Gate. He had
evidently, too, separated himself from his men.

"I shall be glad when we reach de Bouchage's house," I said with a
shiver, for the apparition of my husband had sent a chill through me.

"It is not far now," replied Madame; and then we both became silent,
absorbed in our own thoughts. She, no doubt, thinking of the Vicomte,
and I with my mind full of forebodings as to what other evil fate had
in store for me; and with this there came thoughts of de Clermont,
whose presence I seemed absolutely to feel about me. I could not say I
loved him, but it was as if he had a power over me that sapped my
strength, and I felt that I was being dragged towards him. I cannot
explain what it was, but others have told me the same, that when his
clear blue eyes were fixed on them, they seemed to lose themselves,
and that his glance had a power, the force of which no one could put
into words, nor indeed, can I.

It was only by an effort and a prayer that I succeeded in collecting
myself; and it was with no little joy that I saw the grey outlines of
the Château de Bouchage, and knew that for the remainder of the night
there was rest.

I will pass over our journey till we reached the Limousin. Going at
our utmost strength, we found we could barely cover more than six
leagues a day; and as day after day passed, and no news of the Vicomte
came, Madame's face grew paler, and she became feverishly impatient
for us to hurry onward; yet never for one moment did she lose the
sweetness of her temper or falter in her kindness towards me. No
mishap of any kind befell us; but at the ford of the Gartempe, there
at last came good news that brought the glad tears to Madame's eyes,
and the colour once more to her cheeks, for here a courier met us,
riding with a red spur, to say that the Vicomte was out of danger, and
striding hour by hour towards recovery. The courier further said, in
answer to our questions, that the messenger whom Madame de Termes had
sent on in advance, to announce her coming, had never arrived, and he
himself was more than surprised at meeting us, believing Madame to be
yet at Paris. No doubt the poor man who had been sent on in advance
had met with ill, and we thanked God for the lucky chance that had put
us in the way of the Vicomte's messenger, and also that it was not
with us as with our man, for he had doubtless been killed, and indeed
he was never seen again. Back we sent the courier with a spare horse
to announce our speedy coming, and it was a gay and joyous party that
splashed through the sparkling waters of the Gartempe. Even I, for the
moment, forgot everything with the glad tidings that had come like the
lark's song in the morning to cheer my friend's heart, and for a brief
space I forgot de Lorgnac and my bonds, and was once more Denise de
Mieux, as heedless and light-hearted as youth, high spirits, and
health could make me. It was decided to push on to Ambazac at any cost
by that evening. The news we had heard seemed to lighten even the
loads of the pack animals, and we soon left the silver thread of the
river behind us, and entered the outskirts of the Viennois. As for me,
I do not know how it was, but I was, as I have said, in the wildest of
spirits, and nothing could content me but the most rapid motion. At
one time I urged my horse far in advance of the party, at another I
circled round and round them, or lagged behind, till they were all but
out of sight, and then caught them up at the full speed of my beast,
and all this despite Lalande's grumbling that the horse would be worn
out. He spoke truly enough, but I was in one of those moods that can
brook no control, and went my own way. I was destined, however, to be
brought back sharply to the past, from which for the moment I had
escaped. As we reached the wooded hills of Les Eschelles, I had
allowed the party to go well in advance of me, and, stopping for a
moment, dismounted near a spring from which a little brook, hedged in
on each side with ferns, babbled noisily off along the hillside. To
me, who after all, loved the fresh sweet country, the scene was
enchanting. The road wound half-way up the side of the spur, and the
rough hillside with its beech forests, amongst the leaves of which
twined the enchanter's nightshade, swept downwards in bold curves into
a wild moorland, covered with purple heather and golden broom. The
sheer rock above me was gay with pink mallow, and the crimson of the
cranesbill flashed here and there, whilst the swish of the bracken in
the breeze was pleasant to my ears. Overhead, between me and the
absolute blue of the sky, was a yellow lacework of birch leaves, and a
wild rose, thick with its snowy bloom, scrambled along the face of the
rock just above the spring. It was to gather a bouquet of these
flowers for Madame that I had halted and dismounted. The task was more
difficult than I imagined, and whilst I was wrestling with it, I heard
the full rich baritone of a man's voice singing out into the morning,
and the next moment, the singer turned the corner of a bluff a few
yards from me, and Raoul de Clermont was before me. He stopped short
in his song with an exclamation, and, lifting his plumed hat, said in
astonishment:

"You, mademoiselle! Pardon--Madame de Lorgnac! Where in the world have
you dropped from? Or, stay--are you the genius of this spot?" and his
laughing eyes looked me full in the face.

I stood with my flowers in my hands, inwardly trembling, but outwardly
calm.

"It is rather for me to ask where in the world you have sprung from,
monsieur. It is not fair to startle people like this."

"I ask your pardon once more. As it happens, I am travelling on
business and pleasure combined. My estates of Clermont-Ferrand lie but
a short way from here, as you perhaps know; but let me help you to add
to those flowers you have gathered," and he sprang from his horse.

"No, thank you, Monsieur de Clermont," I answered hastily. "I must
hurry on lest Madame de Termes, with whom I am travelling, should
think I am lost."

"So it is Monsieur de Clermont now, is it? It will be a stiff Monsieur
le Marquis soon," and my heart began to beat, though I said nothing,
and he went on: "For old sake's sake let me gather that cluster yonder
for you, and then Monsieur de Clermont will take you to Madame."

With a touch of his poniard he cut the flowers, and handed them to me,
breaking one as he did and fastening it into the flap of his
pourpoint. So quiet and masterful was his manner that I did nothing to
resist, and then, putting me on my horse, he mounted himself, saying
with that joyous laugh of his:

"Now, fair lady, let us hasten onward to Madame de Termes. I need
protection, too--I fear my knaves have lagged far behind."




                             CHAPTER IV.

                             AT AMBAZAC.


The road swept onward with gentle curves, at one time hanging to
the edge of the hillside, at another walled in on either hand by
rocks covered with fern and bracken, to whose jagged and broken
surface--whereon purples, greens, and browns seemed to absorb
themselves into each other--there clung the yellow agrimony, and
climbing rose, with its sweet bloom full of restless, murmuring bees.

Sometimes the path lost itself in some cool arcade of trees, where the
sunlight fell in oblique golden shafts through the leaves that
interlaced overhead, and then suddenly, without warning, we would come
to a level stretch on which the marguerites lay thick as snowflakes,
and across which the wind bustled riotously.

As we cantered along side by side, my companion again broke forth
into a joyous song, that sprang full-throated and clear, from a heart
that never seemed to have known a moment of pain. His was a lithe,
leopard-like strength, and as I looked at him, my thoughts ran back to
the time when we first met, on his return from the Venetian Embassy,
whither he had gone when M. de Bruslart made a mess of things. I do
not know why it was, but he singled me out for his particular notice;
and though it was openly known that he was betrothed to the second
daughter of M. D'Ayen, I, like a fool, was flattered by the attentions
of this gay and brilliant cavalier, and day by day we were thrown
together more and more, and a sort of confidence was established
between us that was almost more than friendship. There was, as I have
said, that in his masterful way, that had the effect of leaving me
powerless; and though he could put all its light in his eyes, and all
its tones in his voice, I felt instinctively that he did not love me,
but was merely playing with me to exercise his strength, and dragging
me towards him with a resistless force. In short, the influence of de
Clermont on me was never for my good, and our intercourse always left
me with the conviction that I had sunk a little lower than before; and
it was at times like these, when I met de Lorgnac's grave eyes, that I
felt the unspoken reproach in their glance, and would struggle to rise
again, and then, in the consciousness of my own folly, I felt I fairly
hated him for seeing my weakness. What right had de Lorgnac even to
think of me? What did it matter to him what I did or said? So I used
to argue with myself; yet in my heart of hearts, I felt that my
standard of right and wrong, was being measured by what I imagined a
man, to whom I had hardly ever spoken, might think.

When I make this confession, and say that the influence of de Clermont
over me was never for my good, I do not mean to imply that I was
guilty of anything more than foolishness; but the effect of it was to
sap my high ideas, and I now know that this man, aided by his
surroundings--and they were all to his advantage--took the pleasure
of a devil in lowering my moral nature, and in moulding me to
become "of the world," as he would put it. God be thanked that the
world is not as he would have made it. At that time, however, I was
dazzled--all but overpowered by him, and day by day my struggles were
growing weaker, like those of some poor fly caught in a pitiless web.
The knowledge of all this was to come to me later, when, by God's
help, I escaped; but then I was blind, and foolish, and mad.

My companion's song was interrupted by Lalande, who came galloping
back in hot haste, and in no good temper, to say that the whole party
had halted to wait for me; and quickening our pace we hurried onward,
and found them about a mile further on. To say that Madame de Termes
was surprised at seeing de Clermont is to say little, and I could see,
too, that she was not very well pleased; but he spoke to her so fairly
and gracefully that, in spite of herself, she thawed; and half an hour
later he was riding at her bridle hand, bringing smiles that had long
been absent to her face. He was overjoyed to hear of the Vicomte's
recovery, and said many flattering things about him, for he knew him
well, having served under him in the campaign of Languedoc, and then
he went on to become more communicative about himself, saying that he
was the bearer of a despatch to the King of Navarre, adding, with a
laugh, "a duplicate, you know--the original being carried by M.
Norreys, the English freelance. _Ma foi!_ But I should not be
surprised if I reached the Bearnnois before the sluggish islander."

"Hardly, if you loiter here, Monsieur le Marquis," I said.

"You must bear the blame for that, Madame; but I will add that my
orders are to pass through Périgueux as well, and so, Madame," and he
turned to my friend, "if you will permit Raoul de Clermont to be your
escort there, he will look upon it as the most sacred trust of his
life."

He bowed to his saddle-bow, and looked so winning and handsome that
Madame replied most graciously in the affirmative. A little beyond La
Jonchère something very like an adventure befell us--the first on this
hitherto uneventful journey. At the cross road leading to Bourganeuf,
we met with a party of six or eight men, who did not require a second
glance to make us see that they were capable of any mischief. They had
halted to bait their horses, and, flung about in picturesque
attitudes, were resting under the trees--as ill-looking a set of
fellows as the pleasant shade of the planes had ever fallen upon. Had
they known beforehand that we were travelling this way, they would
very probably have arranged an attack on us; but as it was we came
upon them rather suddenly, and as our party--which had been added to
by de Clermont's two lackeys--was somewhat too strong to assault
openly, without the risk of broken heads and hard knocks--things which
gentry of this kind do not much affect--they let us alone, contenting
themselves with gathering into a group to watch us as we went by; and
this we did slowly, our men with their arms ready. As we approached,
however, and saw their truculent faces, I had doubts as to whether we
should pass them without bloodshed, and begged de Clermont in a low
voice to prevent any such thing. He had drawn a light rapier that he
wore, but as I spoke he put it back with a snap, and holding out
his hand, asked for the loan of my riding-whip--a little delicate,
agate-handled thing.

"It will be enough," he said as I gave it to him, and he began to
swing it backwards and forwards, as if using it to flick off flies
from his horse. To my joy they made no attempt to molest us, though at
one time a quarrel hung on a cobweb. For as we passed, the leader of
the troop, a big burly man, with a very long sword trailing at his
side, and a face as red as the constant dipping of his nose into a
wine cup could make it, advanced a step into the wood, and, wishing us
the day, tried deliberately to get a better look at me, with an
unspeakable expression in his eyes. I saw de Clermont's face grow cold
and hard, he quietly put his horse between me and the man, and
checking it slightly, stretched out the whip, and touched a not very
clean white scarf the creature wore over his shoulder, saying:

"You are a trifle too near Limoges to wear this, my man--take my
advice and fling it away."

"That is my affair," answered the man insolently.

"Precisely, Captain la Coquille. I spoke but for your good. Ah! take
care!" and de Clermont's horse, no doubt secretly touched by the spur,
lashed out suddenly, causing the man to spring back with an oath and
an exclamation of:

"You know me! Who the devil are you?"

To this, however, de Clermont made no answer, but as we passed on he
returned my whip to me, saying, "I am glad I did not have to use it.
It would have deprived you of a pretty toy had I done so."

"Thank you. Who is that horrible man? You called him by name."

"Yes, la Coquille. I know him by sight, though he does not know me. He
was very near being crucified once, and escaped but by a fluke. He is
robber, thief, and perhaps a murderer, and----"

"And what!"

De Clermont reached forward and brushed off an imaginary fly from his
horse's ears.

"And has something of a history. I believe he was a gentleman once,
and then went under--found his way to the galleys. After that he was
anything, and perhaps I ought not to tell you, but in time he became
de Lorgnac's sergeant--his confidential man--and it was only his
master's influence that saved him from a well-deserved death. It was
foolish of de Lorgnac, for the man knew too many of his secrets, and
was getting dangerous. I hope I have not pained you," he added gently.

"Not in the least," I replied, and rode on looking straight before me.
So this vile criminal was once my husband's confidential servant, was
perhaps still connected with him in his dark designs. And then I said
a bitter thing, "Like master, like man. Is not that the adage,
monsieur?" But as the words escaped me, I felt a keen regret.

"God help you, Denise," I heard de Clermont murmur as if to himself,
and then he turned abruptly from me, and joined Madame de Termes,
leaving me with a beating heart, for his words had come to me with a
sense of undying, hopeless love in them, and he was so brave, he
seemed so true, and looked so handsome, that my heart went out in pity
for him. How the mind can move! In a moment there rose before me
thoughts of a life far different from the one to which I was doomed,
and with them came the grim spectres of the vows that bound me
forever, and which I would have to keep. God help me! Yes, I needed
help--de Clermont was right.

We passed on, leaving the gang still under the plane-trees, and soon
came in view of Ambazac, lying amidst its setting of waving
cornfields. Here for a little time we suddenly missed de Clermont and
one of his lackeys, and both Madame and I were much concerned, for the
same thought struck us both, that he had lagged behind and then gone
off hot-foot to punish la Coquille. We were about to turn after him
when he came in sight, followed by his man, and caught us up, riding
with a free rein. He perhaps saw the inquiry in my look, for he said
softly to me, "I went back to pick up a souvenir I had dropped," and
his eye fell on the lapel of his coat where my rose was, a little,
however, the worse for wear. After that he did not speak to me, but
kept by Madame and devoted himself to her with a delicacy for which I
was grateful, for I felt I wanted all my thoughts for myself. At
Ambazac, which we reached in a little, we found good accommodation at
a large inn, although the town was full, it being the _fête_ of St.
Etienne de Muret; and after taking some light refreshment Madame and I
retired to our apartments, to rest until the supper hour, for we were
wearied. We supped in the common hall, but at a small table a little
apart from the others, and de Clermont, who sat next to me, gave
Madame an interesting account of the defence of Ambazac, made by her
husband against the Prince of Condé. It was whilst he was detailing
the incidents of this adventure that, with a great clattering and much
loud talking, la Coquille and his men entered the dining-room, and
began to shout for food and drink. Most of the people in the inn being
common country folk and unarmed, made way for the crew with haste, and
even an expression of alarm appeared on Lalande's face, for our own
servants were but six in number, including the baggage drivers, and
Madame's maid and my own, who, of course, were useless, and two of our
men-servants were at the moment attending to the horses; so that we
were at a decided disadvantage, and la Coquille was not slow to
perceive this.

"_Dame_," he exclaimed, looking towards us, "here is my popinjay and
his sugar-plum. Look you, my good fellow, join those boys there,
whilst I bask in beauty's smiles."

His men crowded round our servants with rough joking, and he, picking
up a stool, placed it at our table, and held out an immense greasy paw
to me.

"Shake hands, _ma mignonne!_ Never mind the old lady and the silk
mercer. There is no lover like a brave soldier."

Madame was white with anger. I had sprung to my feet, meditating
flight, and the villain's followers raised a hoarse shout, "Courage,
captain! None but the brave deserve the fair."

Then de Clermont's hand was on the man's neck, and with a swing of his
arm he sent him staggering back almost across the room. He recovered
himself on the instant, however, for he was a powerful man, and rushed
forward; but stopped when he saw de Clermont's rapier in his hand, and
began to tug at his fathom of a sword. His men, however, offered no
assistance to him, contenting themselves with breaking into loud
laughter. As for de Clermont, he was as cool and self-possessed as if
he were at a Court function.

"Out of this," he said. "Begone--else I shall have you flogged and you
shall taste the _carcan_. Be off."

"The _carcan!_ You silkworm, you cream-faced dancing-master!" yelled
the man, who had now drawn his sword. "Who the devil are you to
threaten _me_--la Coquille--with the _carcan?_ Blood of a Jew! Who are
you?"

"The Marquis de Clermont-Ferrand," was the answer, "and these ladies
are of the household of M. de Termes, and now I will give you and your
men two minutes to go. If not I shall have them stoned out of the
place; and you--you know what to expect. If you are wise you will put
a hundred leagues between yourself and Périgord after this; and now be
off--fool."

The man dropped his sword into its sheath and stammered out, "Your
pardon, monseigneur! I did not know. Come, boys," he said with an
affectation of unconcern, "these ladies complain that the place is too
crowded; we will go elsewhere. At your service, mesdames," and making
a bow that had a sort of faded grace about it, he swaggered off
followed by his men, who took his lead with surprising alacrity. The
people in the inn and our servants raised a cheer, and were for going
after them, doubtless to administer the stoning; but de Clermont put a
stop to this, saying in a peremptory tone, "Let them go; I will see
that they are dealt with."

As may be imagined we were in no mood for much supper after this. My
knees felt very weak under me, and Madame de Termes was trembling all
over; but she thanked de Clermont very gracefully, and he made some
modest answer with his eyes fixed on me, and I--I could say nothing.
We would have retired at once, but de Clermont pressed us to stay, and
Madame, with a little smile, agreed, saying, "I am afraid even after
all these years I am not quite a soldier's wife." So we lingered yet a
little longer and found our nerves come back to us. After that we sat
in the garden where the moonlight was full and bright, and the breeze
brought us the scent of the roses. Then de Clermont bringing out his
lute sang to us. He had a voice such as neither I, nor any one else I
knew who had listened to it, had ever heard equalled. So, perhaps,
sang his old troubadour ancestors, and the sweet notes had died with
the days of chivalry to be born in Raoul de Clermont. The song he
chose was one that was perchance written by one of his minstrel
forbears, and described in that old tongue that we no longer use, a
lover's agony at being separated forever from his mistress. The words
were, perhaps, poor, but there was genuine feeling in them, and sung
by de Clermont, it might have been the wail of an angel shut out from
Paradise. Never did I hear the like--never would I care to hear the
like again, and as the last of the glorious notes died away in a
liquid stream of ineffable melody, I saw Madame's face buried in her
hands, and there was a great sob behind me that came from the broad
chest of Lalande, who had stolen up to hear, and was blubbering like a
child. Then Madame de Termes rose, and hurried off followed by
Lalande, and we were alone, I sitting still with my whole soul full of
that wondrous song, and every nerve strung to its highest pitch,
whilst de Clermont remained standing, his lute, slung by its silken
sash, in the loop of his arm.

"Denise!" he said, "you understand, dear?"

"Yes." I could barely whisper the word; and then he bent down and
kissed me softly on the forehead, and the touch of his lips seemed to
burn into me like a red-hot seal. With a little cry I rose to my feet,
and hardly knowing what I was doing, ran past him, never stopping
until I reached my room. Here I remained as if lost in a dream, with a
hundred mad thoughts dancing in my brain. I tried to pray, but my lips
could only frame words, for there was nothing in my heart; and then I
thought I would seek forgetfulness in sleep. But sleep would not come,
and I lay awake watching the broad banner of moonlight that came in
through the open window, and all the memories of the past awake within
me. De Clermont's kiss still burned hotly on my face, and I shivered
with the shame and the sin of it, for I was another's wife--and Heaven
help me! I thought then that I loved de Clermont. Oh! the misery of
those hours, when I tossed from side to side with dry, burning eyes
and bitter shame in my heart. At last, as the moon was paling, I could
endure it no longer, and, rising from my bed, began to pace the room.
I felt that what I needed was motion, movement--I could not be still.
If I could only pray! and as the thought came to me once more I heard
a little _clink_, and stooping, picked up a small locket containing a
miniature of my mother which I wore round my neck, the gold chain by
which it was suspended having broken in my restless movements. I
opened the locket, and standing near the window looked at the picture,
and as I live it seemed to lighten so that I could see each feature,
with the soft eyes bent on me in pity; and then a voice--it was her
voice--said:

"Denise, pray!"

And then my eyes were blinded with tears, and flinging myself on my
knees with my hands clasped on the mullions of the window I sobbed
out, "God! Dear God! Have pity on me!"

I could say no more, but my whole soul went out with these words and I
knelt there, still and motionless, with the sense of a great peace
falling upon me. Then it was as if the very heavens grew bright as
day, and the light filled my room so that my eyes were dazzled and I
could not see. And I covered my face with my hands to shield my eyes
from the splendour.


                          *   *   *   *   *


When I looked up again the glory was gone, but my soul was at rest. I
stood at the window and let the cool breeze fan me, whilst I peered
out into the darkness, for the moon had sunk and it was now the black
hour that touches the dawn. As I watched I heard the bells of St.
Etienne calling the Lauds across the grave of the night, and I knew
that in two hours it would be daylight, and felt that the Unseen God
had heard my prayer.




                              CHAPTER V.

                M. LE MARQUIS LEADS HIS HIGHEST TRUMP.


When I came down in the morning I found we were all ready to start.
Madame was mounted, and de Clermont was standing to assist me to my
horse. It all seemed so strange after the crisis of last night. I had
not schooled myself. I had not had time to meet de Clermont with
unconcern, and overcome by a sudden shyness I declined his aid, and he
said in his cool, level voice:

"You are very proud this morning."

The touch of proprietorship in his tone, which he so often used
towards me, and to which I had hitherto submitted, jarred on me now,
and in a moment my courage had come back. I looked him full in the
face and answered:

"It is necessary to be proud sometimes, monsieur."

Our eyes held each other for an instant, and for the first time I saw
in his clear blue glance an expression of hesitation and surprise, and
I felt that the compelling power of his look was gone, and then--he
dropped his gaze, and stepping back lifted his hat without a word; but
I saw the white line of his teeth close on his nether lip.

Then we started, and de Clermont dropped away to the rear of the
party, leaving Madame de Termes and myself alone. She was full of the
strange song of last night.

"I had heard of his voice before," she said, "but never thought it was
anything like that. St. Siege!" and she gave a little shudder. "I am
an old woman; but it was maddening. I forgot everything. I could think
of nothing except that sorrow in that last verse--the poor man, the
poor man!" And the dear old lady's eyes filled once more with tears at
the recollection. "But it was not a good song," she went on in a
moment, "it was a beautiful evil thing, and he shall sing it no more.
I will speak to him. It is wrong. It is wicked to touch the heart as
that song can. He is very silent and grave to-day. I wonder if it
affected him as it did me?"

But I made no answer, for my mind was full of other things, of the
hopeless love in the heart that I thought so strong and brave, and of
the wondrous power that had come over me and enabled me to be victor
over myself, and I cast up an unspoken prayer that this strength
should be continued to me, and then I found de Clermont once more by
my side.

Madame kept her word about the song, and he said gravely:

"I promise. I will never sing it again. It hurts me, too," and,
changing the subject, other matters were spoken about. In a little I
found myself separated from Madame, and de Clermont, bending forward,
said:

"I have news I should have given before that will interest you,
madame--something you ought to know--of M. de Lorgnac."

"Is it really of importance?"

"I think so. It will remain for you to decide."

"Then what is it, monsieur?"

"I cannot well tell you here. We will let them go onward, and ride
slowly behind."

I agreed silently, and we soon found ourselves at a little distance
from the party. We were descending the wooded valley of the Briance,
and a turn in the forest road left us alone. Then de Clermont, who had
up to now remained silent, began abruptly:

"Madame, it has been given to me to find out the business on which M.
de Lorgnac is engaged, and over which you have been sacrificed. You
are a brave woman--the bravest I have ever met--and I know you will
bear with the bluntness of my speech, for this is no time to beat
about the bush."

"Monsieur, it does not concern me on what business M. de Lorgnac is
engaged. I only ask and pray God to give me some refuge where I may
never see him again."

"Hear me a moment. I think it does concern you, and vitally too."

"Then what is it?"

"Now call to mind your race, and all that can give you strength.
Denise de Mieux, your husband is nothing more than an assassin. He has
been hired by the King and that she-devil the Queen Mother to murder
Navarre. It is a political necessity for them, and they have found an
instrument in Blaise de Lorgnac base enough for their purpose. His
price was high, though--it was you, Denise, and de Tavannes, who is in
the secret, has paid it. How he came to persuade himself to do so, I
know not. He is your uncle, and I will not say anything against him."

I felt as if I had received a blow. There was truth in every line of
de Clermont's face, in every tone of his voice; but I struggled
against it, and said faintly:

"This does not concern me--I am but a wife in name. I shall never see
de Lorgnac. He is dead to me."

"Would to God he were dead indeed!" he burst out. "But there is more.
Catherine is tyrant to her finger nails. She has heard that you have
refused to remain with your husband, and at his request an order has
been sent to de Termes to deliver you up to him at Périgueux. Norreys
has taken that order, and it has already reached him. If you doubt me
here is the duplicate. You may read it for yourself."

He placed a letter in my hands. I knew the seal well. The red shield
with the _palle_ of the Medici--Catherine's private signet. But I
could not read it. My mind became a chaos. "Oh! what shall I do? What
shall I do?" I exclaimed aloud in my despair.

"Denise!" he said, "there is one way of escape and only one, for de
Lorgnac has already made his claim at Périgueux, and you go straight
into the lion's jaws."

"What is it? Tell me."

He laid his hand on my rein. "Denise--put your trust in me and come.
My dear, I love you--I love you. This marriage is an infamy. Vows such
as they made you swear are not binding. Come with me, my dear, and
under the banner of the Emperor, with you by my side to help me, I
will work out a new life, and the name of Clermont-Ferrand is already
known. Denise! Last night I saw the love-light in your eyes. Let it
burn there again for me. Come."

He made as if to turn my horse's head, and it was only with an effort
that I restrained him. God knows I was sorry for the man. I know, too,
that it was in my heart to take the great love I thought he was giving
me, and, forgetting everything, to follow him to the world's end. In
the few seconds that passed, I went through a frightful struggle, and
then the strength of last night came back to me.

"De Clermont! It is impossible; and now go--go. If you say you love
me, go in pity!"

"Denise, you know not what you say! Think, dear! In two hours we will
be safe. In two hours the world itself could not part us. I will not
let you sacrifice yourself. You love me, dear, and you know it, and
when love like ours exists there is no right and no wrong--only our
love."

"It cannot be--it cannot be. De Clermont, you are tempting the woman
you say you love, to dishonour. Let me tell you plainly, I do not love
you. For one moment I thought I did; but I am sure of myself now; and
even did I love you, as I feel sure you deserve to be loved, I would
never consent to--to what you propose."

"_Mordieu!_" he exclaimed hoarsely, "you are not yourself. Come,
Denise. I hear Lalande riding back, and in a moment it will be too
late."

"Let go my reins, monsieur, else I shall call out. I hear Lalande,
too. Go, monsieur, whilst I can still think of you as I always have.
Go and forget me."

His hand dropped to his side, and taking the occasion I struck my
horse smartly with the whip and he sprang forward. De Clermont made no
attempt to follow, but at the bend of the road, as I glanced across my
shoulder, I saw him turn his horse's head and plunge into the forest,
and a moment later I met Lalande.

I could only realize that I had escaped a great danger; beyond that my
mind could not go; but I was conscious that, despite the terrible
earnestness of his words, there was something that was not convincing
in de Clermont. The narrow escape that I had drove all other things
out of my mind, and it was only when I came in sight of our party
again that I recollected de Clermont's warning that by going to
Périgueux I was going straight into the lion's mouth, and an absolute
despair fell upon me.

When I rode up to Madame's side she glanced at me narrowly and asked
for de Clermont.

I answered truly enough that I did not know, and she looked at me
again with her clear, searching eyes. "It is odd, Denise, but do you
know that his lackeys have gone, too? They left us an hour ago--and
now it seems he has gone, too, without a word of good-bye."

"Monsieur made too sure of the success of his plans," I said bitterly,
and Madame's answer was sharp and swift:

"Denise, there is something wrong--what is it?"

And as we rode close together, side by side, I told her every word,
hiding nothing. My voice sounded hard and dry to my own ears, my eyes
were burning, and when I had finished, she said, "Denise, I cannot
believe M. de Clermont's story. I _feel_ it is untrue. Even if it were
true de Termes would never carry out the order about you. He is
incapable of such baseness."

"There is always one way of escape, madame, and I am my father's
daughter."

"And there is a God above, girl. Your father's daughter should never
talk like that."

"Then why does He not hear my prayers?" I said, in impious
forgetfulness. "Is heaven so far that our voices cannot reach there?"

And my dear old friend sighed deeply in answer.

We were to halt at Chalusset for the night, and here confirmation was
received of the truth of de Clermont's story, for an equerry of the
Vicomte's met us here with a letter to his wife in his own hand, in
which he said that our message, the one we had sent from the Gartempe,
had reached him, and that he was hastening forward himself to meet us.
Then he went on to other matters, and his letter concluded with a
postscript:


"_M. Norreys is here with an order from the King, or, rather, from the
Queen Mother. It is very unfortunate, but must be obeyed_."


She first read the letter herself--we were sitting together in her
apartment, in the one inn at Chalusset--and then she handed it to me
with a request to read it aloud to her. I did so; but on coming to the
postscript my voice faltered in spite of myself, and then she bent
forward and kissed me.

"Denise, it will never be. Are you strong enough to do a brave thing?"

"I will try."

"It is clear to me that de Termes' postscript is a warning for you not
to go to Périgueux. I knew that he would be incapable of carrying out
such orders as he has received--and I can read his meaning between the
lines of his message. Denise, you must not be with me when my husband
and I meet."

"God Himself seems to have abandoned me. What can I do--where shall I
hide?"

"I will tell you. My sister Louise is Abbess of Our Lady of Meymac. I
will send you to her. The convent has special rights of sanctuary that
even Catherine herself would not dare to violate--but she will never
know you are there. Yet it is a long journey, and you will have to
cross the mountains. Will you risk it tonight?"

"I am ready now, madame."

"Very well," and, calling to her maid, she asked for Lalande, and when
the equerry came she turned to him:

"Lalande, how long is it that you have followed Monsieur le Vicomte?"

"Thirty years, madame, from the days when Monsieur was a simple
cavalier of the guard."

"And you would do anything for Monsieur?"

"Madame, I have been his man in lean times and in fat--in famine and
in full harvest. He saved my life at Cerisolles, and it was I who got
him out of the Bastille; I have been by his side from the time he was
a simple gentleman to the present day, when Monsieur is a marshal and
a peer of France. You ask if I would do anything for Monsieur. If
Monsieur le Vicomte were to ask me to lay down my life to-morrow I
would do so willingly."

"I believe you, Lalande. Now listen. Madame de Lorgnac here is in
great danger. It is Monsieur le Vicomte's wish that she should be
conveyed to the Convent of Our Lady of Meymac, and we trust her to
you. No one is to know where she is placed. You must protect her with
your life--do you understand? And you must start now--and alone--for
Madame's hiding-place is a secret."

"We could start in a few minutes, madame, and I will do what you say."

"Then be ready in half an hour."

"Madame," and he was gone.

"Do not let Mousette know whither you are bound, Denise. She is a
chattering ape, and, though she loves you, can never keep a secret. As
for de Termes, I will arrange to manage him--and, dear, keep a brave
heart. I would go with you myself; but you know it is impossible."


                          *   *   *    *   *


The moon was just rising when, after taking an affectionate
farewell of Madame de Termes, who had been to me as a mother, we
started--Mousette, Lalande, and myself. Our horses had been brought to
a little gate at the back of the straggling garden attached to the
inn, by the equerry himself, so that we might get away unobserved.
Hither Madame accompanied us, and after giving some further
instructions in a low tone to Lalande, embraced me again and again,
and I am afraid we both wept, whilst Mousette joined in to keep us
company. Finally we started, and I turned once or twice to look back,
and saw the slender grey-clad figure still at the gate, growing
fainter and fainter in outline at each step we took, and seeming at
last to slip away into the silver haze of the moonlight, until when I
turned for the last time, I could see nothing but the winding road,
the ghostly outline of the trees, and the pointed roof of the inn. I
have often wondered if the girls of the present day would endure and
act as we women had to do then. All women have to endure passively.
This will be so for all time unless the world be made anew, but with
us there were times and seasons when we had to act like men.

Last year, when I was in Paris, where I had taken my daughter for her
presentation, a great lady called on me, the wife and daughter of a
soldier, and she reached our house almost in hysterics, because one of
the wheels of her coach had come off, and she had to walk a hundred
paces or so. She was in fear of her life at the accident. And when we
had made much of her and she was gone, my husband's eyes met mine, and
the same thought struck us both, for he came up and kissed me, saying:

"_Mordieu!_ I thank God I am not thirty years younger!"




                             CHAPTER VI.

                   AT THE SIGN OF THE GOLDEN FROG.


At first we managed to get along at a fair pace, as the road was good
and we were well able to see our way by the moonlight; but after
crossing the Taurion by a frail wooden bridge, which creaked and
groaned ominously as we passed over it, Lalande took a turn to the
right and followed a narrow track whereon we had to ride nose to tail.
Womanlike, I began to think he was taking the wrong road, and asked
him whither he was leading us.

"St. Priest-Taurion lies on the main road, madame, and it would be
well to avoid it. Let not madame have any fear. I could make my way to
Meymac blindfold."

"And want to show off by picking the most horrible paths," shrilled
out Mousette, whose temper, never of the best, had gone to ribbons,
and little wonder, too, poor thing!

"It would be well if we speak in lower tones--better still not to
speak at all," said the equerry, and silencing Mousette with a
reprimand, I asked Lalande to lead on.

Whilst the motion was fast it was not possible to think, but now that
we were going at something like a snail's pace, I unconsciously gave
myself over to my reflections, though I had by this time reached a
state of mind when it seemed impossible for me to distinguish between
right and wrong, or to think coherently. The proof of the truth of de
Clermont's story had accentuated the bitterness in my heart against my
husband, and this was not lessened when I remembered the infamy of the
enterprise which he had undertaken, and of which I was the price. I
had it once or twice in my mind to try and prevent the crime he
contemplated by attempting to warn the Bearnnois; but it was
impossible to do so from here, and I should have to make the attempt
from Meymac. Then that thought gave place to de Clermont, and with the
memory of him regrets that I had not taken his offer, and by one
desperate stroke freed myself forever from de Lorgnac, even at the
cost of that good opinion of the world, we pretend to despise and yet
value so much, even against what I felt to be the teachings of my
conscience. After all I was merely holding to vows that I had never
really made. The priest's benediction surely could not bind me forever
to a hateful life. I had my dreams as all young women and young men
have--of a life that I could share with one whom I could trust and
honour and love. One whose joys would be my joys, whose sorrows would
be my sorrows, whose ambitions and hopes would be my ambitions and
hopes, and so to pass hand in hand with him until one or both of us
were called away to fulfil the mystery of life by death. And de
Clermont? Could he have been the one to have so travelled with me? Did
I love him? For the life of me I could not tell at that moment. At one
time I seemed dragged towards him, at another there was a positive
repulsion, and through it all there was an ever-warning voice within
me, like the tolling of a bell hung over a sunken rock to warn
mariners of danger, telling me, "Beware! Beware!" I felt in my heart
that he did not ring true metal--why, I could not tell--nor can I tell
now. But I suppose that God, who has limited the capacity of us women
to reason as compared with man, has given to us this faculty of
intuition by which we can know. Would that it were followed more
often; would that its warnings were ever heeded! Such were the
thoughts that chased each other through my brain as the long hours
passed, and then they seemed to twine themselves together into a
network that left me powerless to follow them and unravel the tangle.
Oh, it was a weary ride! Overhead hung the moon now light, then
darkened by flitting clouds, with a few stars showing here and there
in the sky. On all sides of us floated a dim silvery haze that made it
appear as if we were going through Dreamland; dark shadows of trees,
fantastic rocks that might have been thrown here and there by giants
at play, and a road that turned and twisted like a serpent's track,
full of stones and boulders, on which our horses continually stumbled,
but, mercifully, did not come down and bring us with them. There was
one advantage we derived from these boulders. They kept the horses and
ourselves from sleeping, for after a stumble and a jerk, both beast
and rider began to see the folly of nodding, and bravely strove to
keep awake. At last we came to something that looked like level
ground, and Lalande suggested that we should increase our pace to a
canter, adding truly enough that it would rouse us all up. We followed
his advice, nothing loath, and kept at this pace with occasional halts
to rest the horses, for the best part of the night. At last, however,
neither Mousette nor myself could endure going on longer, and indeed
our horses were as much, if not more worn out than we were. In short,
we were so fatigued that I had got into a frame of mind in which I did
not care what happened to me, one way or the other, and Mousette, poor
girl, was crying softly to herself, though she kept her way with the
greatest courage. This being the case, I called to Lalande that we
could not go on any further; but at his intercession we made yet
another effort, and at last we halted near a clump of beeches, close
to which a small brook purled by. I do not think I shall ever forget
the kindness and attention of the honest fellow. He made us as
comfortable a resting-place as he could contrive with the aid of
saddles and rugs, and then, giving us some wine to drink, bade us
sleep, whilst he retired a little distance--not to rest, but to attend
to the horses and keep a watch. So utterly tired out were we that we
must have fallen asleep at once, and the sun was already rising when
Lalande aroused us.

"If madame does not mind," he said, "it will be well if we move
further up into that wood yonder and rest there, whilst I go to a
village hard at hand, and procure some food, and take news of the
state of the road."

To this I assented readily, and after walking for about a quarter of a
mile we found a spot which exactly suited our purpose, where both we
and the horses could be concealed for the remainder of the day, if it
was so necessary, without any fear of discovery. Lalande then started
off for the village, and we waited his coming with a hungry
impatience, taking, however, the opportunity of his absence to make a
forest toilet. It was some time before the equerry came back, and we
were just beginning to be alarmed at his absence when he appeared,
bearing with him the things he went to procure, and whilst Mousette
and I were eating, he told us what he had found out, adding:

"I regret that madame will not be able to travel by daylight--that
_croquemort_ la Coquille and his gang passed through St. Bathilde
yesterday, and are in the neighbourhood, and not they alone, but one
or two others of like kidney. We shall have to make our way as best we
can by night."

But this was too much--not for anything was I going to endure the
misery of last night over again, and I argued and expostulated with
Lalande, Mousette joining with me with shrill objurgations, and at
last the poor fellow gave in, but I confess with a very bad grace,
grumbling a good deal to himself and declaring he would be no longer
responsible for our safety. I own now that we were wrong in persisting
as we did, but I put it to any one if they would have endured what we
had to endure without protest; and then we were women, and I am afraid
possessed some of that contrariness of disposition which I have heard
the opposite sex credit us with--though for pure, mulish obstinacy,
give me a man who thinks he has made up his mind.

Lalande was, however, determined upon one thing, and that was to avoid
the main road, and as I had so far successfully opposed his plan of
forcing a night journey, I did not feel justified in making further
objections, and allowed him to follow the by-paths he chose without
further protest, though indeed, it was as if there was some truth in
Mousette's remark of last night, that he was choosing the most
difficult tracks to show how well he knew the way. We now entered the
mountains of the Limousin, and what would have been a mile elsewhere,
became three here with the ups and downs, the turns and twists. For
miles we passed never a human habitation, except now and again a few
woodcutters' huts, and sometimes a small outlying farm, and I felt the
justice of Lalande's remark, when he defended himself from a sharp
attack by Mousette, by saying he had chosen this road because it was
safe from gentlemen like la Coquille, who never found any bones worth
the picking on it, and therefore left it and its difficulties severely
alone--though, of course, there was the odd chance of our meeting
them, and so again to the old argument of travelling by night. As we
went on the scenery became wilder and more savage, and once a large
grey wolf, with two cubs by her side, appeared on the track about
fifty paces or so in front of us, and after giving our party a quiet
survey, and showing us a line of great strong teeth as she snarled on
us, trotted calmly off with her family down the hillside. Both
Mousette and myself were not unnaturally alarmed; but Lalande, with a
"Never fear, madame, there is no danger," kept quietly along, though I
saw that he had pulled a pistol from his holster. As the day advanced
we became aware that the sun was being obscured by clouds more often
than it should be at this time of year, and every now and again gusts
of wind would race down the ravines, and lose themselves with ominous
warnings through the forest. Still, however, the horizon was clear,
and high above all others we could make out the crest of Mount Odouze.
I asked Lalande if he thought there was likely to be a storm.

"It is hard to tell, madame; storms come on very suddenly in these
hills, but if there is one it will not be very bad, for we can see the
Cradle, as that dip between the two peaks of Mount Odouze is called,
quite distinctly."

But though he spoke thus reassuringly, I saw that he increased the
pace, and that ever and again he would scan the horizon, and look up
at the sky. Once when he thought I had caught him, he explained as he
pointed upwards:

"'Tis a red eagle, madame, that must have flown here from the
Pyrenees--a long journey. See--there it is--that speck in the sky."

I followed his glance, but could make out nothing. "You have sharp
eyesight, Lalande," I said with a smile, and then the matter dropped.
I could not, however, but think how good a heart was beneath that
rough exterior, and not the finest gentleman I have ever met could
have behaved to us with more chivalrous courtesy than did that simple
under officer of horse. A little past midday we rested for an hour or
so, more for the sake of the animals than ourselves, and then
continued our journey.

"We should make St. Yriarte by about three o'clock, madame," said
Lalande, "and there is a small inn there kept by my sister and her
husband, for we are of the Limousin. It is called 'The Golden Frog.'
We will stay there for the night, and a long march to-morrow will
bring us to Meymac by nightfall."

"Thank goodness!" exclaimed Mousette, "for every bone in my body aches
as if some one had beaten me."

As the time passed, bringing with it no storm, I began to think we
were safe from that annoyance, and at last from the crest of a hill
over which we were riding we suddenly came in sight of St. Yriarte,
lying below us in a little valley. As we did so Lalande called out,
"We will be there in half an hour, madame--and save all chance of a
wetting for to-night."

It took us a little time to descend the slope of the hill, but after
that we came to more or less level ground, and in a few moments
reached the gates of the inn, which stood in a large garden some way
apart from the hamlet, for St. Yriarte could be called by no other
name.

As we rode in a dog commenced to bark; Lalande called out "Jeanne!
Jeanne!" and, on our halting near the entrance, gay with honeysuckle,
in full bloom, Lalande's sister and her husband came out to meet us,
and seeing him, fell to embracing him, and there was an animated
converse carried on by all three at once, whilst Mousette and I were
kept waiting. Whilst we did this patiently, I began to look around me,
and for the first time became aware of the presence of a stranger. He
had been sitting on a garden seat, half-hidden by the falling
honeysuckle, but, as my eyes fell on him, he rose politely, and stood
as if in doubt, whether he should offer to assist me to dismount, or
not. He was a tall well-built man, with aquiline features, fair hair,
and blue eyes, and wore a short pointed beard slightly tinged with
grey. His dress was simple though rich, and it was easy to see that,
whoever he was, he was a person of some consequence. The position was
getting just a little absurd when Jeanne's voice rang out sharply:

"Of course! Of course! Madame de Lorgnac shall have the best we can
provide."

I saw the stranger start perceptibly, and an odd, curious look came
into his eyes. Then as if with an effort he stepped forward, and
lifting his hat said with a foreign accent:

"Will Madame de Lorgnac permit me to assist her to alight? I have the
honour to be known to Monsieur le Chevalier de Lorgnac. My name is
Norreys--Colonel Norreys, of whom, perhaps, you may have heard."

I became almost sick with fear and apprehension, for this was the very
man whom I least wished to meet. It was he who had borne the order
concerning me to de Termes. He must therefore be aware that my
presence there meant that I was in flight. He acknowledged himself to
be a friend of my husband, and I felt that all was lost. Mustering up
as much courage as I could I thanked him for his offer, and he helped
me to dismount, saying as he did so:

"Madame will find the inn more than comfortable. I have been here for
two days awaiting a friend. If he comes this evening I shall have to
leave to-morrow with the greatest regret. It has been so quiet and
peaceful here."

I glanced at him again. It was a strong, good face. The eyes looked at
me honestly, and in their clear depths I could see no deceit. That
woman's instinct of which I have spoken, told me at once that here was
a man to be trusted, that he was incapable of treachery. But the same
feeling used to come over me whenever I saw de Lorgnac, and yet--who
was more base than he?

Nevertheless, I was now moved by an impulse I could not resist.

"Monsieur de Norreys, will you see me in an hour? I have a favour to
ask of you."

He looked a little surprised, but bowed. "If there is anything I can
do for you, madame, command me." His tone was cold and formal, and
chilled me. Then he stepped to one side to let me pass, and I entered
the inn.

I had made up my mind. I felt sure that he was here to prevent my
going further. What else could have brought him to this out-of-the-way
place? But he looked a gentleman and a man of honour, and I would
follow the dictates of my heart, and throw myself on his mercy.




                              CHAPTER VII.

                              UNMASKED.


Now do I reverently thank God that by His mercy I was strong enough to
take the course I adopted. For had I not done so, I know not what had
been my fate. On the surface, the impulse on which I had acted seemed
foolish and ill-advised, yet when I think over all calmly now, and
especially of the circumstances that led to my meeting with Monsieur
de Norreys, and the events which followed, I am sure and confident
that the Merciful Power which had so far watched over me had heard my
prayers and answered them. At the moment, however, I did not know or
think of this; my one idea was to try, if possible, to enlist the
Englishman on my side, and if this was not to be, then I knew not what
I should do, though the most desperate resolves were rioting in my
brain. I was too excited to rest, but a bath, a change of toilet, and
a little food, refreshed me and steadied my nerves, and then I sat for
a space by the open window of my small room to try and collect myself
for my interview with M. de Norreys. The clouds seemed to have passed
away, though far behind over the mountains there was a grey bank that
showed that the storm was hovering over us, and the wind still blew in
fitful, uncertain gusts. Below me Lalande was attending to the horses,
and a bow-shot or so beyond the garden of the inn, under some walnut
trees I saw what I had not noticed before, and that was a small
encampment of lances. This did not tend to reassure me, and if I had
any doubts as to whom the troops belonged, they were set at rest by
the sight of Norreys, mounted on a powerful black horse, riding slowly
towards the inn, evidently with a view of keeping his appointment with
me. I had tried to set out in my mind what I would say to him, but
each effort seemed to be worse than the other, and at last I
determined to simply throw myself on his chivalry, and stand the
hazard of the result. At one time I thought that we might perhaps make
a dash for it and escape; but even I could see that our wearied horses
would not have a chance against fresh ones, and if it came to a
struggle we had but one sword to depend upon--a brave one, it is
true--but what could one poor man do against ten? No, there was no way
but the one way, the idea of which had come so suddenly to me. Now I
heard Norreys dismounting at the door of the inn, and after a moment's
hesitation, I took my courage in both hands, and stepped down to meet
him. He was standing in the little parlour, his back to the light, as
I entered, so that I could not see the expression of his face, but he
bowed, I thought stiffly, on my coming in, and handed me one of the
rough chairs in the room, saying as he did so, "I trust I have not
kept you waiting, madame; I was delayed a little longer than I
expected with my men, as I have much to arrange for." The last words,
measured out in his prim, formal speech, appeared to me to convey a
hint to be quick with my business, and as a natural result all but
took away from me the power of saying anything. Mustering up courage,
however, I took the chair he offered, saying, as I did so, "Will you
not be seated, monsieur?"

"Thank you," came the answer in the same set tone, and then he fixed
his eyes on me with a grave attention, in which, however, there was
mingled, as I thought, much repressed curiosity.

"Monsieur de Norreys," I began desperately, "you cannot but be aware
that I fully understand why you are here."

He started slightly, but recovered himself at once, though he said
nothing.

"And, monsieur," I went on, "I have come to throw myself on your
mercy. Monsieur, you look a gentleman. What object can you gain by
carrying out your orders against a poor weak woman, whose only end is
to hide herself from the world? I have done no wrong, monsieur, and if
you knew my story you would pity me--I ask you as a gentleman--as a
man of honour."

"Madame," he interrupted, genuine amaze in his voice, "I do not
understand. As far as I am concerned you are as free as air. I know
you to be the wife of my friend de Lorgnac, and my only regret is that
I am unable to offer you my escort----"

"Say that again, monsieur. Do you mean your business here has nothing
to do with me?"

"Absolutely nothing, madame. I am afraid you have alarmed yourself
needlessly."

"But M. de Clermont told me; he said you had gone to Périgueux to have
me delivered over to my husband."

"Madame, I know of no necessity for doing so, and if I was not certain
that you must be mistaken I would say that M. de Clermont deceived
you."

"I tell you he did not. He showed me the despatch with the Queen's
cipher on it--asked me to read it. Monsieur, listen; he did not lie,
and I shall tell you why. It is you who deceive me and are playing
with me. Wait, monsieur."

A flicker of a smile passed over his face and shone in his eyes, but
he answered simply:

"I am attention; but, madame, think before you tell me things which
perhaps I ought not to know."

"Let me be the judge of that, and I will show you, monsieur, that it
is useless, even in kindness, to hide your orders from me."

Then I told him briefly of my marriage, and of the circumstances
attending it, whilst he leaned back in his chair and listened without
a word, and with so little sympathy in his look, that he might have
been cut out of a block of wood. The result was that as I spoke I grew
somewhat excited, and my tongue was bitter against de Lorgnac, whom,
to my sorrow, I upbraided with the infamy of this enterprise; and then
I spoke of de Clermont, of his bravery and kindness, forgetting other
things that had happened, and how he had warned me of my danger, and
especially about Norreys himself, finishing with a rapid "and,
monsieur, surely you will let me go. I put myself on your chivalry."

He stopped me with a movement of his hand, and, rising from his seat,
faced me. "Madame de Lorgnac, I tell you again that you are utterly
mistaken. I have nothing to do with your movements. Yet I am glad you
have spoken, for de Lorgnac is my friend, and I now see what the other
man is. It is not my habit to meddle with other people's affairs; but,
because de Lorgnac is my friend, I will tell you something that will
give you pain, but will open your eyes, and you must forgive the plain
speech of my country, for we have no mincing turns of the tongue. On
the authority of the Marquis de Clermont you have accused me of
playing catchpole. This is not a matter that troubles me, my honour is
in safe keeping; but you have also accused your husband and my friend,
and believe Blaise de Lorgnac to be an assassin, and capable of
forcing a marriage on you for the sake of your wealth. For your own
sake, for the sake of de Lorgnac, you shall know the truth."

"I listen, monsieur."

"I'll tell you. At a supper party given by that _croquemitaine_ of a
King of yours, a certain matter was discussed, there was no
assassination in it; but the execution of it had to be dropped, as no
one of those present who was offered the enterprise would accept it.
Later on the wine passed, and a fool, after the fashion of your Court,
began to boast openly of his conquests and spoke openly of your
favour."

"Monsieur, how dare you!"

"Madame, it is the fashion amongst your fine gentlemen to lie like
this. I will do de Clermont the justice to say that it was not he, for
he was not there, and the man who spoke is dead, so let his name pass.
But Tavannes was there, and had to be reckoned with. The King offered
to have you married, and the marshal burst out that he would give you
to the first man who asked."

"Oh!"

"Blaise de Lorgnac was on guard at the door. He had heard every word,
and now stepped forward and claimed your hand, offering at the same
time to undertake the affair for which an agent could not be found.
His offer was accepted, and in the early morning, madame, in the yard
of la Boucherie, where I had the honour to be your husband's second,
your traducer met with his death, and with his last breath confessed
that he had lied. That was the very day, madame, that you foolishly
rode out with de Clermont. Stay, there is yet a little more, and that
concerns the despatch. My business at Périgueux was to give an order
to de Termes to receive at St. Priest-Taurion a prisoner of state, who
was to be handed over to him by myself and de Clermont. I am here to
receive that prisoner, and it is Blaise de Lorgnac who is entrusted
with the duty of taking him alive. The duplicate despatch, if there is
such a one--and you say you have seen the cover--does not refer to
you, and de Clermont has lied. I will settle with him for using my
name; but, madame, you are as free as air, and may go where you like,
and for Blaise de Lorgnac's sake I will help you all I can--and this
is all."

"Oh! I don't know what to think."

"You are free to go, I say; and as de Clermont will be here soon, and
not alone, I would advise an immediate departure. I will detach a
brace of lances to act as further escort, and let me give the order
now. I will be back in a moment."

He did not wait for my reply, but turning on his heel stepped out of
the room, and I sat with my brain burning, and my head between my
hands. I could not doubt this story, and if ever woman passed through
a furnace of shame and anger I did so in those few minutes. I now knew
what de Lorgnac was. I now for the first time saw de Clermont in his
true colours, with his mask off; and yet--and yet--perhaps Norreys was
mistaken about him. I had proved myself to be so utterly wrong, to
have jumped to conclusions so rashly, that I dared not sit in judgment
any more on a soul, and whilst I floundered on in this way Norreys
came back.

"I have arranged everything, madame; the orders have been given to
your people. They will be ready to start in a half hour. About
midnight you should reach Millevranches, and I should halt there and
go on with the morning."

"Monsieur, how can I thank you? I have no words."

"Let the matter rest, Madame de Lorgnac," and then his voice took a
gentler tone. "I would not urge your going at once except that we are
on de Clermont's own estates, and he has a hundred lances with him at
his Château of Ferrand. It is shut out from view by the hills, but it
lies yonder," He pointed to the west through the open window, and as
he did so an exclamation of surprise burst from him, and he crossed
himself.

I followed his glance and saw, high in the heavens, hanging over the
mountainous pile of reddening clouds that lay in the west, the grim
outline of a vast fortress. The huge walls reflected back with a
coppery lustre the red light of the sun, and it was as if we could see
figures moving on the ramparts and the flash of arms from the
battlements. From the flag-staff on the donjon a broad banner flaunted
itself proudly, and so clear and distinct was the light that we made
out with ease the blazon on the standard, and the straining leashed
ounces of the house of Clermont-Ferrand. And then the clouds took a
duskier red, and the solid mass of castle faded away into nothing. I
stood still and speechless, and Norreys burst forth, "Sorcery, as I
live. Madame, that was the Château de Ferrand."

I had never seen the like before, never again did I see it, nor do I
wish to, and it left me so chilled and faint, that Norreys noticed it
at once and called for wine. As he did so, I fancied that I heard the
beat of a horse's hoof, but paid no attention to it; and then the wine
came and I drank, he standing over me. I was just setting down the
glass when there was a grating at the entrance, a long shadow fell
through the doorway, and de Clermont stepped in with a cheery
"Good-day, Monsieur de Norreys. I see you have not been neglecting
your time here. _Arnidieu!_ Denise! Is it you? You seem to be forever
dropping from the clouds across my path," and he held out his hand;
but I took no notice, though I rose from my chair, and Norreys merely
bowed frigidly in return to his greeting. De Clermont seemed in nowise
disconcerted, but there was an angry flash in his eyes, and for a
second he stood tapping the end of his boot with his riding-whip, and
looking from one to another of us with a half smile on his lips. Then
putting his plumed hat on the table, and drawing off his gloves, he
drawled out with a veiled insolence in every tone of his voice, "Upon
my word, M. de Norreys, I congratulate you, and if it were not for our
business I would leave you in peace, for madame seems to have learned
the lesson that 'It is well to be off with the old love before you are
on with the new.'"

He had grasped the weakness of the situation at a glance, and took
full advantage of it, but though outwardly cool and self-possessed
there was death in his eyes. I could bear it no longer, and turned to
leave the room. He rose from his seat, saying, "Pray do not leave us,
madame--you look pale, though, and perhaps need rest. I trust,
however, your indisposition has nothing to do with the sight I
observed you watching from the window. Do you know what it means?" and
he turned to Norreys.

In spite of myself I stopped for an instant; but Norreys ignored him,
and de Clermont went on:

"It means, monsieur, that this apparition is always seen when a man
dies by the hand of de Clermont-Ferrand."

Norreys simply bowed, though I thought I heard the word "boaster"
muttered between his teeth, and, turning to me, said, "Permit me,
madame," and gave me his arm to take me from the room.

Outside, in the narrow passage that led to my chamber, he stopped and
held out his hand.

"Let me say adieu, madame. I would accompany you if I could, but it is
impossible. I would advise you to leave at once before any of M. le
Marquis's men come up. I can see he is ripe for mischief."

"Monsieur de Norreys, I am no fool--I can understand. For mercy's sake
avoid a quarrel with de Clermont. He is a deadly swordsman, and if
anything happens to you, I shall feel all my life that I was the cause
of it. God knows I owe you much, for you have opened my eyes. Promise
me, monsieur, promise me!"

"Madame, the use of the sword is not confined to your country nor to
de Clermont alone," and then he saw the tears that sprang to my eyes.
"Ah! madame, not that; you will unman me! See, there is your equerry.
Commend me to de Lorgnac when you meet, and adieu!"

He dropped my hand and turned on his heel, but I could not let him go
like that.

"Monsieur, not that way. Promise me what I ask."

"I promise to avoid a quarrel if possible; I can say no more." With
that he went, erect and stately. Of what followed I never knew; but,
alas! There is one sorrow that ever haunts me; and in the quiet
churchyard of St. Yriarte is a tomb which I visit yearly with my
husband, and it covers the heart of as brave and gallant a gentleman
as ever lived--poor Norreys!




                            CHAPTER VIII.

                          BLAISE DE LORGNAC.


We lost no time in setting forth from The Golden Frog, and as Lalande
had apparently been warned by Norreys of the danger of our meeting any
of de Clermont's following, we once more left, what by a stretch I
might call the direct road, and again took to the hill tracks, where
our wearied beasts, whom from my heart I pitied, stumbled slowly and
painfully along.

But if the beasts were wearied, how was it with myself and my maid? I
was able to keep up, no doubt because of the mental excitement under
which I laboured; but I have never understood how my faithful Mousette
endured that journey; it was in truth a road of suffering.

I simply went on mechanically, my mind a prey to a thousand
conflicting emotions, and to thoughts that chased one another across
it like dry and fallen leaves in a forest glade, blown hither and
thither by an autumn wind. It had struck me, as there was nothing to
be feared from de Termes, that I should order Lalande to turn and
guide me back to Madame and Périgueux; but de Clermont barred the way,
and it was better after all to push on to Meymac, and there with a
cooler head than I now possessed, decide what to do. What had I not
passed through within the last few hours? I had made trouble enough
for myself by jumping womanlike to conclusions, and imagining that the
postscript of de Termes' letter to his wife referred to me, whereas it
clearly concerned some one else. That was perhaps a pardonable error
considering the circumstances; but there were other things, and even
now my face grows hot when I think of them.

My nature is proud! That can never alter, though sorrow and many a
bitter lesson has brought me good sense; but it cut like a knife to
realize how I had been fooled by de Clermont, and how near I had been
to fall a victim to a pitiless libertine. It is a bad and cruel lesson
for any woman to learn that she has been the sport of a man, ten times
bad and cruel if the woman be proud and high-spirited. And as for de
Lorgnac I did not know what to think. My mind concerning him was a
chaos. I had misjudged him, wronged him utterly; but it was gall to me
to know that he had stood forth as my champion. It was bitterness
untold to think that I must humble myself in my heart before him; I
could never do so in words to his face, if ever we met, a daughter of
Mieux could not do that. It was awful to think that his hands were red
with blood for my sake, and I shuddered as I reflected that I had been
as it were the immediate cause of a frightful death; de Lorgnac had no
business to kill that man whoever he was; he had no right to make me
feel almost a murderess; and withal there rose in my heart a kind
of fierce pride in the man who could do this for my sake, and a
joy I could not make out because he was other than I took him to
be--because, in short, he was a gallant gentleman, and not--oh! I need
say no more.

When we had travelled for about the space of two hours the horse of
one of the two troopers, whom M. Norreys in his kindness had lent to
me, fell whilst crossing a water-cut, and on examination it was found
to be so hurt that it was impossible for it to continue the journey to
Millevranches. It was decided that the two men should be left behind
to return to their camp--they had not far to go--and that we should
press on as before. I gave the good fellows a brace of crowns apiece,
and commending myself to M. de Norreys, we went on, the sheep track--I
can call it by no better name--now passing through all the wildest
scenery surrounding the Puy de Meymac.

"If luck befriends us, madame, and the storm which has kept off so
long does not come, we should reach Millevranches in a little over two
hours," said Lalande to me as we rode down a narrow and steep descent.

"Why should the storm come on now? There is no breath of air stirring,
and the moon is clear."

The equerry did not reply until reaching the more level ground at the
foot of the incline down which we had ridden, and then, pointing
behind me, said simply, "Look, madame!"

Turning, I saw that half the arc of the heavens was obscured as it
were by a thick curtain, that hung heavily and sullenly over it, and
as we looked a chain of fire ran across the blackness, the distant
roar of thunder came to us, and then a low, deep moaning vibrated
through the air.

"The storm is afoot, I fear, madame. We must press on and cross the
Luxège, which though narrow enough to jump over now, may in an hour be
impassable, and with the darkness it will be impossible to tell the
way."

At this speech Mousette gave a little cry of alarm, and then, her
fears overcoming her, began to declare that she could go no further,
and begged us to leave her there to die, to be killed by the storm or
eaten up by the wolves, it did not matter which, either alternative
was preferable to going on. I tried all I could to pacify the poor
girl, but she was getting into a state of hysterical excitement, and
absolutely refused to move, though every moment was precious, and the
dead stillness formerly around us was now awake with the voice of the
coming storm. At last I began to despair of moving her, when Lalande
said grimly, "Leave her to me, madame. I am an old married man." Then
bending forward he seized my bridle and with a cool "Adieu,
mademoiselle! I hope you will not disagree with the wolves," to
Mousette, began to urge our beasts forward, notwithstanding my
protests. But the issue showed he was right, though I confess I was
surprised to see the way in which my maid recovered her strength under
this rough-and-ready treatment, for in two minutes she was bustling
along at our heels. But the lost time never came to our hands again,
and as we began to descend the wooded slope towards the Luxège, which
we could hear humming angrily below us, the stream burst with a shriek
of the winds, and an absolute darkness, that was rendered more intense
and horrible by the vivid flashes of lightning, and the continuous
roar of thunder. In a trice Lalande had dismounted and taken us from
our horses, and the poor animals seemed so overcome by fear or
fatigue, or both combined, that they stood perfectly still.

"It is death, madame, attempting to ride now. We must get to the river
on foot." Saying this, Lalande managed somehow to get the horses in
front of us, and then, holding on to each other and guided by the
incessant flashes of lightning, we began a slow and painful progress.
I soon began to feel the fatigue and exhaustion so much that I, in my
turn, begged Lalande to stop.

"Courage, madame, 'tis but a few yards more to the river bank," he
answered, "there we can stop and rest," and I took my heart up and
strove onwards once again. At last, when within a few yards of the
river, I sank down utterly exhausted and unable to move further, and
Mousette alternately sobbed and prayed over me, whilst now and again I
could see the tall figure of Lalande standing grim and motionless, and
once I fancied I heard a deep oath.

He gave us some cognac from a flask he carried, and then there was
nothing for it but to wait and meet death, if it was so to be. Now
there came a series of lightning flashes that lit up the terrific
scene, and I almost gasped, for right before me on a butting crag I
made out a small castle. Lalande saw it too, for he blew long and
shrilly on his horn, and then we watched and waited for a time that
seemed interminable, when all at once the flare of a huge beacon rose
bright and red against the darkness, and an answering bugle reached
our ears. Lalande blew again, and to our joy there was a reply.
Strength came back to me with the prospect of safety, and rising to my
feet I called to Lalande: "On! On!"

He answered, "The river, madame----"

I looked, and saw below me a white lashing flood that swung and
swirled past with a savage roar. The lightning showed us the angry
water, and the wicked dancing foam, that seemed to leap up in delight
at the prospect of the black swirl below it dragging us down to death.
Then again we heard the bugle notes, and saw the lights of torches,
and heard the shouting of men from the opposite bank.

"Let us go on to meet them--we are saved!" screamed Mousette, and
holding on to each other we staggered forward past the horses, who
stood all huddled together, only to be stopped here by the utter
darkness, and Lalande.

"For the love of heaven, madame, do not move," he cried, "rescue is
coming."

And it did come.

All that I can remember was seeing the light of many sputtering
torches around us. Some one lifted me in his arms like a child, and I
heard a voice say, "Be careful with the horses over the bridge,
Pierre," and then my strength gave way.


                          *   *   *   *   *


I had been asleep, asleep for ages it seemed, and all the past was a
dream, thank God! This was the thought that struck me as I opened my
eyes; but as I looked around, I saw the room in which I lay was
strange to me, and inch by inch everything came back--all except the
events of the last moments by the river, where my recollection became
confused. It was daylight, but still the remains of the storm of last
night were in evidence, and I could hear the water dripping from the
eaves, and through the half-open dormer window, the murmur of the
Luxège, still angry and unappeased, reached my ears.

Where was I? I looked about me, and found that I was in a large room,
warm from the effects of a huge wood fire that danced cheerily in the
fireplace. Leaning on one elbow, I glanced still further about me, and
saw that the furniture was of the same old and heavily antique make
that we had at Mieux. The curtains of the bed were, however, worn and
faded, the tapestry on the walls was older and more faded still; and
then my eyes were arrested by the coat-of-arms carved on the stonework
of the fireplace--two wolves' heads, with a motto so chipped and
defaced that I could not read it. Whose was the device? I lay back and
thought, but could not make it out. Certainly not that of any of the
great houses--no doubt my kind preserver belonged to the lesser
nobility--but I could soon find out. Then I closed my eyes once more
and would have slept, but was aroused by some one entering the room,
and, looking up, saw Mousette.

"Ah! madem--madame, I mean," she said eagerly, "thank God, you are
looking none the worse for that terrible night. I little thought we
would ever live to see daylight again."

"Where are we, Mousette? And who are the kind people who saved us?"

"I do not know, madame," she answered quickly, "but we are the only
women here. But," she ran on, "it is mid-day and touching the dinner
hour. Will madame rise or be served here?"

"I will rise, of course, Mousette;" and during the course of my toilet
I asked if the people of the house knew who we were.

"I have not mentioned anything, madame," replied Mousette, with her
face slightly turned away, "and Lalande is discreet."

I felt that Mousette knew more than she cared to tell; but it is not
my way to converse with servants; and finishing my dressing in
silence, I asked her to show me the way to the salon, and as I spoke I
heard a gong go.

"Monsieur will be served at once," said Mousette. "This way, madame,"
and opening the curtains of the door, she led me down a series of
winding steps worn with the feet that had passed up and down there for
perhaps a couple of centuries, and then, past a long passage hung with
suits of rusty armour and musty trophies of the chase, to a large
door. I gathered that Mousette had been making good use of her time
whilst in the house, but kept silent. The door was open, and as I
passed in Mousette left me. I found I was in a room that was
apparently used as a dining-room and salon as well. There was trace of
recent occupation, for a man's hat and a pair of leathern gloves
somewhat soiled with use were lying on a table, and a great hound rose
slowly from the rushes on the floor, and, after eyeing me a moment,
came up in a most friendly manner to be patted and made much of. A
small table near the fireplace was laid for one, and as I was looking
towards it a grey-haired and sober servant brought in the dinner, and
then, bowing gravely, announced that I was served.

"Is not monsieur--monsieur--?" I stammered.

"Monsieur le Chevalier has had to go out on urgent business. He has
ordered me to present his compliments to madame----"

"I see; monsieur does not dine here."

The man bowed, and I sat down to a solitary meal with the big dog at
my feet, and the silent, grave attendant to wait on me. I amused
myself with the hound, and with taking note of the room. Like
everything else I had seen, its furniture and fittings seemed a
century old, and spoke of wealth that had passed away. There was a
sadness about this, and a gloom that saddened me in spite of myself,
so that it was with an effort I managed to eat, and then, when dinner
was over, I told the servant to inform his master that I desired to
thank him for the great kindness shown to me.

"I will deliver madame's message," and with this reply he went.

Left to myself, I went to the window and looked out through the
glazing. The landscape was obscured by a rolling mist; but the sun was
dissipating this bravely. It was a wild and desolate scene, and,
despite the sunlight, oppressed me almost as much as my solitary meal,
so I turned back into the room, and, seating myself in a great chair,
stared into the fireplace, the hound stretching himself beside me. I
was still wearied, and my thoughts ran slowly on until I caught myself
wondering who my unknown host was, and getting a trifle impatient,
too, because he did not come, for I was anxious to set forward to
Meymac.

Suddenly I heard a steady measured step in the passage, the hound
leaped up with a bay of welcome, and as I rose from my seat the
curtain was lifted, and I stood face to face with my husband.

"You! De Lorgnac!" I gasped.

"Even I," he said. "I thought you knew. Are you none the worse for
your adventure of last night?"

"I am quite well, thanks to God." "And thanks to you," I was about to
add, but my lips could not frame the words, and I felt myself
beginning to tremble. Monsieur noticed this.

"I am afraid you underrate your strength; do sit down," he said
kindly.

"I prefer to stand, thank you, Monsieur le Chevalier," and then there
was a silence, during which I know not what passed through de
Lorgnac's mind; but I, I was fighting with myself to prevent my heart
getting the better of me, for if so I would have to humble myself--I,
a daughter of Mieux! Monsieur broke the silence himself.

"Denise, I give you my word of honour that I would not have intruded
on you, but that you asked to see me, and I thought you knew whom you
wished to see. Besides, I felt that I owed a little to myself. You
have accused me of being a dishonoured gentleman, of being little less
than a common bravo, of wedding you to your misery for your estates."
He came forward a step and looked me full in the face with his clear
strong eyes. "As God is my witness," he went on, "you are utterly
mistaken. I am going to-day on an affair the issue of which no one can
foresee. Think! Would I go with a lie on my lips? Answer me--tell me.
Whatever else you may think, you do not believe this."

I was fumbling with one of his gloves, and could not meet his look.

"You put me in a difficult position, monsieur--this is your own
house."

He looked about him with a bitter smile. "Yes--it is my house--hardly
the house to which one would bring the heiress of Mieux--but is that
your answer to me?"

And still I was silent. I could not bring myself to say what he
wanted. And now too it was not only pride that was holding me back. I
felt that if I gave him the answer he wished, manlike he would begin
to press his love on me, and I was not prepared for this. I did not
know my own feelings towards him; but of one thing I was sure--I would
not be bound by hollow vows that were forced upon me, and so I fenced.

"This adventure of yours, monsieur--is it so very dangerous?"

"It is not the danger I am thinking of. It is your faith in my honour.
No man is blameless, and least of all I. I own I was wrong--that I
sinned grievously in marrying you as I have. My excuse is that I love
you--that is a thing I cannot control. But I will do all I can to make
reparation. I will never see you again, and the times are such that
you may soon be as free as air. All that I ask is this one thing."

"But, monsieur, have you no proof--nothing to bring forward?"

"I have nothing to offer but my word."

"Your word--your word--is that all you can say?"

He bowed slightly in reply, but his look was hungry for his answer.
Still I could not give it, and played with time.

"You say you love me. Does love resign its object as you do--without a
struggle? If I believe one thing I must believe all, monsieur. I
cannot believe a profession of love like yours"--how false I knew this
to be--"and the rest must follow."

He twisted at his moustache in the old way, and I saw his sunburnt
face grow, as it were on a sudden, wan and haggard, and the pity that
lies in all women's hearts rose within me.

"Monsieur le Chevalier, if you were to get the answer that you wanted,
would you still adhere to your promise and never see me again?"

"I have said so," he said hoarsely.

"Then, monsieur, let me tell you that I have found I was wrong, and
that I do believe your word--nay, more, monsieur, I have found de
Lorgnac to be a gallant gentleman--whom Denise de Mieux has to thank
for her honour and her life----"

"Denise!" There was a glad note in his voice, and in a moment he had
stepped up to me, and I had yielded, but that I wanted this king
amongst men to be king over himself.

"A moment, monsieur. You have given me your word, be strong enough to
keep it. I have learned to respect and honour you; but I do not love
you. You must keep your word, de Lorgnac, and go--until I ask you to
come back."

"Without a word he turned on his heel and walked towards the door; but
I could not let him go like that and I called to him. He stopped and
turned towards me, but made no further advance, and then I went up to
him with my hand outstretched.

"Monsieur, there is one thing more. I have the honour to be the wife
of de Lorgnac, and for the present I crave your permission to make
Lorgnac my home. Will you not grant me this request? And will you not
shake hands before you go?"

I thought I had tried him too far, and that the man would break down;
but no, the metal was true. Yet the haggard look in his face went out
as he answered:

"Denise, Lorgnac is yours to its smallest stone, and I thank you for
this." Then he bent down and touched my fingers with his lips, and was
gone.




                             CHAPTER IX.

                        LA COQUILLE'S MESSAGE.


"Until I ask you to come back."

These were my own words to de Lorgnac, and they rang in my ears as I
listened to his footsteps dying away along the passage. Would I ever
call him back? It was on my tongue to do so as he went; but I held
myself in, and began restlessly to pace the room, the dog watching my
movements with his grave eyes. I could not bear to have them fixed
upon me--those eyes that seemed to have a soul imprisoned behind them,
and that were so like, in their honest glance, to those of my husband.
I bent down and stroked the great shaggy head.

"If I but knew myself! If I but knew myself!" I called out aloud, and
then moved aimlessly towards the window. Here I looked out, but saw
nothing of the view, for I was looking into my own heart, and there
all was mist and fog. The more I tried to think the more hopeless it
all seemed, and it came to me to abandon my position, and, accepting
my fate, make the best of circumstances as other women had done. I
could give respect and trust; and as long as my husband knew this, and
I looked after his comforts, he would never know that I did not love
him. I had seen enough of the world to know how selfishly blind men
are in this respect. But de Lorgnac was not as other men. I felt that
his keen eye would take in the part I was playing, that his great love
for me would penetrate and grasp all my devices, and that he would
feel that he had only a wife--not a lover as well. What was this love
that I was in doubt about? If it meant absolute sacrifice of myself,
then I could give it to no man. If it meant respect, and honour, and a
desire for a constant guiding presence about me, then I felt I could
give that to Blaise de Lorgnac; but I felt, too, that more was due to
him, and it was well to wait--to wait until my heart told me
undeniably that I had found its king.

The neigh of a horse, and the clatter of hoofs on stony ground,
aroused me. Bending forward over the window, I looked out and saw de
Lorgnac and a half dozen mounted men riding out of the courtyard. My
husband rode a little in advance, square and erect, his plumeless
helmet glittering in the sunlight; but he never gave one backward
glance to the window. Even if he thought I was not there, he might
have done so; he might have given me the chance. The men who rode
behind him seemed stout, strong fellows, though their casques were
battered and their cuirasses rusty; and as the last of them went out I
recognised la Coquille. I know I had no right to pick and choose for
de Lorgnac, but I would have given my right hand not to have seen that
swashbuckler riding behind my husband. Such men as he were never
employed on honest deeds! With a stamp of my foot I turned from the
window and saw Pierre, the old servant, waiting patiently near the
door, with a huge bunch of keys on a salver in his hand. As our eyes
met he bowed to the ground.

"I did not know it was Madame de Lorgnac who was here until an hour
ago," he said. "Monsieur le Chevalier has directed that these should
be given over to you, and the household is outside awaiting madame's
orders."

Half amused, half embarrassed, I took the keys. I felt sure de Lorgnac
had given no such order, but that this was the spontaneous outcome of
old Pierre's politeness. Fastening them in my girdle, I said, with as
gracious, yet dignified an air as I could assume, "Call in the people,
please."

Pierre bowed once more to the ground and vanished to reappear in two
minutes with a well-grown youth, and the two stood bolt upright before
me. This was the household of de Lorgnac, then. The smile died away
from my lips as I thought of the straits to which a gallant gentleman
was reduced. "Pierre," I said, "you must add Mousette, my maid, to the
household, and see that the good Lalande is well treated," and I
placed a small purse containing a half dozen or so of gold crowns that
I happened to have with me in the old man's hands. He held the little
silken bag for a moment, and then his face began to flush.

"There is no need, madame; we have enough."

"You forget, Pierre, what I am giving you is Monsieur le Chevalier's,
to whom God grant a safe return."

He took the money, though I saw a suspicious swimming of his eyes, and
I hastily asked:

"And do those men who rode out with Monsieur belong to the household,
too, Pierre?"

"St. Blaise--no, madame! They came here but yesterday morning, and
with their leader have drunk and sworn about the place ever since.
They filled the lower hall with disorder; but they are stout fellows,
and we had hardly been able to help you so well last night but for
them; they follow Monsieur le Chevalier for a little time only."

I well knew for what purpose, but kept silent on that point, saying,
"And how far is Lorgnac from here?"

"The town you mean, madame?"

"Precisely."

"At the foot of the hill to the right of the château; we cannot see it
from here. Ah! it was a fine place until Monsieur de Ganache, and his
bandits of Huguenots, came over from La Roche Canillac one fine day
and put the place to fire and sword. Monsieur le Chevalier has vowed
his death at the shrine of Our Lady of Lorgnac. Ah! he is a devil, is
Monsieur de Ganache; he is with the Bearnnois now."

"And is there any news of the Huguenots moving now?"

"None, madame; but Antoine the peddler of Argentat says that a great
lady from Paris is at the Château de Canillac, and that Monsieur de
Turenne, and many a high lord from the south have been visiting her.
They will be tired of dancing and singing soon, those hot bloods, and
we may have to look to the castle walls."

"This evening, then, you must take me to Lorgnac," I said with a view
to end the conversation.

"It is madame's order, but----" and he stopped short for a second, and
then continued, "Antoine, the peddler's daughter, who married Gribot,
the woodman of Lorgnac, has a cow and calf for sale, and there is none
in the château."

"Then buy it of her, Pierre," and with another low bow the old man
withdrew with the "household," who had evidently been trained in a
severe school by Pierre, for he had stood bolt upright like a soldier
at attention, and never moved muscle during the whole of the
interview.

So my business as mistress of Lorgnac had begun; but there were one or
two things that required immediate attention from me before I began my
household duties. I called Mousette, and going over the money we had,
found that it reached to about a hundred crowns. This was enough for
all present requirements, though I would want much more soon, if all
the designs that were flitting through my brain, in shadow as it were,
were carried out; but that could be easily arranged hereafter. Then I
saw Lalande, and informing him that my journey was over, asked if
there would be any difficulty in his remaining at Lorgnac for at least
a few days, as I wanted his help. He answered that he was at my
service, and this being settled, I set about exploring the quaint old
mansion, and as I did so all kinds of dreams of changing its cheerless
aspect possessed me, and the time passed on wings.

In the afternoon we visited the town. Alas! It had been for a century
but a hamlet, and all traces of town, if ever there was any, had long
gone. But small and poor and obscure as Lorgnac was, the hand of war
had not spared it, and blackened rafter and fallen roof still bore
witness to Monsieur de Ganache's pitiless visit. Privation and want
had left their marks on the faces of the score or so of inhabitants of
the village; but when they found out who I was, they came forward
eagerly, and a small child, no doubt prompted by her elders, gave me a
bouquet of wild flowers, and I went back, vowing in my heart that ere
many weeks were over all this would be changed.

That night as I sat before the huge log fire in the hall with Moro the
hound--I found out his name from Pierre--for the first time for many
days my mind was at rest, and I began to feel also, for the first
time, the glow that comes to the heart when one is able to help one's
fellow creatures. I knew I was young and inexperienced, that my life,
especially within the last year in the poisonous air of the Court, had
been made up of frivolities and follies that had brought their own
sharp punishment with them, yet I had always in my mind the desire for
a nobler life, where my wealth could be used to help the distressed,
and as far as it could go to add to the happiness of others. So far so
good; but there was my own happiness and that of de Lorgnac to think
of. There was a great pity in my heart for him; but was it right to
mistake pity for love, and give myself wholly to a man to make him
happy, to my own sorrow? For the life of me I could not see this. I
felt that a man who would accept such a sacrifice would be unworthy of
it. But Blaise de Lorgnac was not of those who would do this. He
was true metal. Was there another man who would have acted as he
did--whose love was so generous and yet so strong? I doubt it. I well
knew the profession of a man's love, that swore it was ready to die
for its object; but was unable to abandon or to forego anything in its
selfishness. But the love that was, as it were, in the hollow of my
hand was not as this; and then I began to see the hidden secret of my
own heart, and called out aloud, "Come back, de Lorgnac. Come back!"
But the echo of the vaulted roof was my only answer. Yet that night I
slept a happy woman, for I knew what it was now to love.

The days passed, and notwithstanding that I threw myself heart and
soul into my plans about Lorgnac, there was an ever-eating care in my
heart, for no tidings came of my husband, and it was not pride now,
but a shyness that I could not overcome, do what I would, that
absolutely prevented me from making any inquiry, though no doubt
inquiry would have been fruitless and vain. Listless and tired, I sat
one day towards the afternoon at the window by the hall, my favourite
seat, and looked down the winding road, that clung to the side of the
steep rocks, hoping against hope that I should see the great white
horse, when suddenly I spied a horseman riding towards the castle with
a loose rein, and at times he swayed from side to side like a drunken
man. In a moment I felt the worst tidings, and knew that the rider was
bringing me sorrow. With an effort I roused myself, and with shaking
limbs went down to the courtyard, and there, calling Lalande and
Pierre, waited for his coming, who was bringing me the evil message I
felt I already knew. We had not long to wait. With a thunder of hoofs,
the horseman passed the lower drawbridge, and reining in sharply, slid
rather than dismounted from his saddle. It was la Coquille, covered
with blood and dust, and the red gone out of his cheeks.

"Madame--Madame de Lorgnac!" he called out in a cracked voice.

"I am here, monsieur."

"I can stay but a moment. Fly! Fly! The bloodhounds are even now on my
track, and they will be here in an hour."

"Is that all?" How my heart beat, though my voice was cool!

"All? No. But give me to drink, and I will speak. My throat is parched
and I have lost much blood."

Pierre handed him a flagon of wine, which he drained at a draught, and
then went on.

"It will not take long to tell. _Mordieu!_ It was the best plan ever
laid, and to think it was spoiled by a traitor. Madame, if we had
succeeded, France would have been at peace, and your husband a marshal
and peer. We watched the Bearnnois for days, and then laid out to
seize him, on the day of a hunting party. We got all details of
movements from that double-dyed traitor, de Clermont; but he played
the right hand for Navarre, and the left for us. We laid out as I
said, and the King came: but not alone--our ambuscade was surprised,
and five as good fellows as ever drew sword now swing to the branches
of the beech trees of Canillac. I got off somehow, but alas! they have
taken de Lorgnac, though not easily, for Monsieur de Ganache fell to
his sword, and I think another too."

"Taken de Lorgnac!"

"Yes, madame--_Mordieu!_ It is the fortune of war! They are coming
straight here, for what purpose I know not; but, _mille diables!_ I
have wasted enough time already, and the skin of la Coquille is the
skin of la Coquille. There is not a moment to spare. Fly if you value
your lives!" And with this he put his foot in his stirrup, and made as
if he would mount his panting horse again.

"Save your skin, Monsieur la Coquille," I said. "As for me and mine,
we stay here. Would to God my husband had true swords at his back!"

He stopped and put down his foot.

"You can say what you please, madame, but we did our best; but as God
is my witness the Huguenots mean death, and I advise you to go. In a
half-hour it will be too late."

"Monsieur, I have asked you to save the skin of la Coquille."

His broad face became dark and red with the blood that rushed to it.
"I know I deserve nothing at your hands, madame," he said. "You think
me a cur, and one I am. _Mordieu!_ For a bribe of twenty crowns--so
fallen am I--I once played the craven for de Clermont before you. It
was at Ambazac not so many days ago. Did I know you were de Lorgnac's
wife, I had cut off my sword arm rather than do what I did then. Let
me make some recompense. I implore you to go. Fools," and he turned to
Lalande and Pierre, "do you wish to swing from the rafters here? Take
her away, by force if necessary."

"Enough, monsieur. You have said too much! I am sorry for you. I would
help you if I could, but my place is here. Save yourself whilst there
is yet time. As for me, I and mine will defend Lorgnac to the last
stone."

He flung the reins he held in his hand from him, and over the
sin-marked features of the man there came somehow an expression of
nobleness.

"Then, by God, madame, I stay! And I thank you for teaching me how to
die. Twenty-five years--twenty-five years ago I was a gentleman, and
to-day I bridge over the past. I will stay, madame, and the sword of
la Coquille will help to hold the castle for you. Hasten, men. Up with
the drawbridge. _Ah! sacre nom d'un chien!_ We are too late!"




                              CHAPTER X.

               MONSIEUR LE CHEVALIER IS PAID IN FULL.


It was too late. Before I realized it, the courtyard was full of armed
men. La Coquille, who had flung himself to the front with his sword
drawn, was ridden down and secured ere he could strike a blow, whilst
Lalande and Pierre, who bore no weapons but their poniards, and were
utterly surprised, shared the like fate. So suddenly and quickly was
this done that--for the courage had gone out of my finger-tips--I
had no time to flee, and I stood like a stone, whilst a sea of
savage faces surged around me. I gave myself for dead, and one, a
trooper--more brute than man--raised his sword to slay me, but was
struck from his horse in the act. Then some one seemed to come from
nowhere to my side--a tall, straight figure, with a shining blade in
his hand, and he called out, "Back! back! Or I run the first man
through!"

The men were called to order in a moment at that tone of command,
though a voice I well knew and now hated called out:

"Well done, de Rosny, my squire of dames. _Pardieu!_ We have the whole
hive--Queen-Bee and all."

"By God!" said another, "they will hang from the rafters in a
half-hour, then--my poor Ganache!" And the speaker, whose rough, harsh
voice was as pitiless as his speech, swore a bitter oath. "Gently,
Tremblecourt," replied the one who had been called de Rosny; "our poor
de Ganache's soul has not flown so far but that the others can
overtake it in time." And then de Clermont came up to me, but as he
passed la Coquille in so doing, the latter strained at his cords, and
hissed rather than spoke out the word "Traitor!" as he spat at him.

"You hang in a little time head downwards at de Lorgnac's feet for
that," said de Clermont calmly, and then turning to me, "'Tis a sad
business this, madame; but war is war, and after all things are going
as you would have them, are they not?"

I could not bear to meet that sneering, beautiful face, which, now
that its mask was snatched away, cared not in how evil an aspect it
showed itself. Words would not come to me, and as I stood there before
de Clermont, quivering in every limb at the awful threat conveyed in
his speech to la Coquille, de Tremblecourt's voice rang out again, mad
and broken with rage:

"Away with them! Sling them from the parapet--now!"

The men around rushed with a yell at la Coquille and his
fellow-prisoners--God pardon those who cause the horrors of war--but
my defender, de Rosny, again interposed, and drove them back, despite
de Tremblecourt's angry protests, whilst de Clermont stayed his rage
with a quiet:

"Be still, Tremblecourt. The King will be here in ten minutes with our
other prisoner, and we will deal with Messieurs--in a bunch," and he
glanced at me with a meaning in his eyes that I read as an open page.

"Come, madame," said de Rosny, who saw my pallor, "let me take you out
of this. I pledge the word of Bethune that no harm will touch you; but
that is to happen, I fear, which is not fit for you to see." With
these words he took my arm kindly and led me inside, unresisting and
as in a dream. In the hall where we stopped I forced myself to regain
some courage. It was no time for a faint heart.

"Monsieur! What does this all mean? What is to happen to de Lorgnac?
Tell me--I am his wife, monsieur."

He bowed gravely yet sadly. "The King of Navarre is generous, madame.
Henri will be here soon, and all may yet be well. In the meantime rest
you here, and compose yourself--you are safe from harm."

With this, he, who was in after years to be the first man in France,
left me almost stunned and broken by what I had heard. Now that I was
about to lose him--nay, had already lost him, for nothing, I felt
sure, would move these pitiless hearts--I realized to the end what de
Lorgnac was to me, and with this came the dreadful conviction that it
was I, and I alone, who had brought this on my husband. I, a fool in
my folly, who did not know my own heart, I who with a word might have
stayed and kept him who was all in all to me, had driven him forth
with my senseless pride to death. I could do nothing to save him. What
could a woman do against these men? And then it was as if the whole
horror that was to be pictured itself before my eyes, and a mocking
fiend gibed in whispers in my ears, "You, you have done this!" Almost
with a cry I sprang from my seat, my hand on my forehead and an
unspoken prayer on my lips. I felt that my brain was giving way, and
that I must do something to regain myself and think. This was no time
for aught but action, and here I was giving way utterly. I might do
something--surely my woman's wit could suggest some means of saving my
husband? Then what happens to those who are face to face with an awful
terror happened to me, and, as once before, I fell on my knees before
God's Throne, and prayed in a mortal agony. "God help me in my
distress!" I called out aloud, and a quiet voice answered:

"Perhaps He has sent the help, Denise."

I sprang up with a start, a wild hope rushing through my heart, and
saw Raoul de Clermont before me, with the sneering hardness out of his
face and all the old soft light in his eyes. If it was so--if he but
bore me the glad tidings his words hinted at--I could forgive him all,
and be his friend forever.

"Say that again, monsieur," I gasped; "say it again and I will bless
you to my last breath." And as I spoke the heavy folds of the curtain
that covered the doorway moved as if stirred by a wind.

"I said that perhaps God"--and he bowed reverently--ah! devil and
traitor!--"that perhaps God has answered your prayer. You have asked
for help, and it has come. I am here to offer it. I, and I alone, can
save de Lorgnac, by force if necessary, for I have fifty lances at my
heels, and it rests with you to say the word. I have been mad, Denise;
then I came to my senses; and now I am mad again. I love you--do you
hear? Love you as man never loved woman. You beautiful thing of ice!
Come with me, and de Lorgnac is free. Come!"

In his eagerness he put forth his hand towards me, but with a shudder
I drew back and his face darkened. Then nerving myself, I made one
last appeal.

"Raoul de Clermont, I believed you once to be a man of honour. Let me
think so again; give me the chance. Be merciful for once. Save my
husband as you say you can. See, it is a wife who pleads. Man! There
must be some spark of knighthood in you to fire your soul! You are
brave, I know. Can you not be generous and pitiful? You have tried to
kill my soul. Monsieur, I will forget that--I will forget the past,
and thank you forever if you do this. Save him, for I love him!"

"Love him!"

"Yes, love him as he deserves to be loved, and by a better woman. De
Clermont, be true to yourself."

His breath came thick and fast, and then he spoke with an effort:

"You ask too much, Denise. I have offered you my terms. I give you
five minutes to say yes or no, and I will take your answer as final.
God is answering your prayer in His own way," he went on, with the
shadow of a sneer once more across his lips.

"He mostly does," came the reply, as the curtain was lifted and de
Rosny stepped in, calling out as he entered, "Madame, the King!"

Then there was a tramp of spurred boots, the clashing of steel
scabbards, the waving of plumes, and ere I knew it I was at the feet
of the Bourbon, sobbing out my prayer for mercy.

He raised me gently--there was no more knightly heart than his.
"Madame! It is not enemies that Henri de Bourbon needs, but friends.
It is not sorrow his presence would cause, but joy. There has been
enough blood shed already in this miserable affair, and--I think it is
my good de Rosny here who anticipated me--all our prisoners are free,
but there is some one here who will tell you the rest himself better
than the Bearnnois can." And, putting a kind hand on my shoulder, he
faced me round to meet the eyes of de Lorgnac.

"I have come back unasked, Denise," he said; but I could make no
answer, and then he took me in his arms and kissed me before them all.

"A wedding present to the happy pair!" and something struck me lightly
on the shoulder and fell at my feet. It was the glove that de Clermont
had snatched from me on the day of my marriage. "I return a present
from madame, given to me on her wedding day. It is no longer of use to
me--Monsieur le Chevalier, will you not take it?" and de Clermont was
before us, the same awful look in his eyes that I had seen there when
he played with death before de Norreys.

De Lorgnac's arm dropped from my waist, and his bronzed face paled as
he stood as if petrified, looking at the soft white glove at my feet.
Then with a voice as hard and stern as his look he turned to me, and
pointing to the glove, said:

"Is this true, madame?"

"It is my glove," was all I could say.

"And permit me to restore it to you," cut in the King, and with a
movement he lifted the glove and placed it in my husband's hand. "Give
it to her back, man! Madame de Canillac was at your wedding, and my
good Margot who writes me such clever letters, and they have both told
me the story of your marriage, and the incident of the glove. They
both saw it snatched from your wife's hand by M. le Marquis--Ventre
St. Gris! For once I think a woman's gossip has done some good--and on
the word of Navarre what I say is true. As for you, monsieur," and
Henri turned to de Clermont, "Monsieur de Rosny here has my commands
for you, and your further presence is excused."

My husband's arm was round my waist once more; but de Clermont made no
movement to go, standing quietly twisting his short blonde moustache.

"Monsieur, you have heard his Majesty," put in de Rosny.

"Yes--I thought, however, that Monsieur de Lorgnac might have a word
to say ere I went."

"That will be in another place, and over our crossed swords, Monsieur
le Marquis," replied my husband, heedless of my entreating look and
gesture, and in as cold and measured a voice as de Clermont's.

"I am at your service, monsieur, when and wherever you please," and
with this, and a formal bow to the King, he passed from the room--a
man under God's right arm of justice.

What happened I never was able to find out exactly; but as far as I
could gather it was this. As already mentioned, la Coquille, Lalande,
and Pierre had been released by Navarre on his coming, and the former
being faint from his wounds was resting on a wooden bench in the
courtyard. As de Clermont passed, the sight of la Coquille and the
memory of the insult he had put on him roused the haughty noble,
already in a white heat with rage, to madness, and he struck the
freelance once, twice, across the face with a light cane he bore in
his hand, and fell a moment after stabbed to the heart, his murderer
being cut down by the men-at-arms.

At once all was hurry and confusion. The dying man was borne in as
gently as he could be, and placed on a settle. There was no leech in
hand, and long before the priest of Lorgnac came it was all over. We
did what we could, and in the horror of the fate that had overtaken
this man in the pride of strength I forgot the past utterly. I could
only see a terrible suffering for which there was no relief. We
gathered, an awestruck group, around him, and he spoke no word at
first, but suddenly called out, "Hold me up--I choke!"

Some one--I afterwards found it was Tremblecourt--raised him slightly
and he spoke again, "De Lorgnac! Say what you have to say now, I'm
going."

And Blaise de Lorgnac knelt by the couch, saying as he did so:

"I have no message now--forget my words, de Clermont."

"Would to God I had died by your hand," came the answer, "but to go
like this--struck down like a dog. Your hand, de Lorgnac--yours,
Denise--quick--I am going. Forgive."

De Tremblecourt laid him softly back on the cushion, and my tears fell
fast on the cold hand I held in mine. Who could remember wrongs at
such a moment?

The King bent over him and whispered in his ear. I thought I heard the
word "pray," and a wan smile played on the lips of the dying man.

"Too late--I cannot cringe now. Ah! Norreys! I will join you soon.
Denise--pardon," and he was gone.


                          *   *   *   *   *


Late that night when all had gone to rest I walked on the ramparts of
Lorgnac, and leaning against the parapet, looked out into the
moonlight. So lost was I in thought that it was not until his hand was
on my shoulder that I knew my husband had joined me.

"Denise," he said, "the King goes to-morrow, and--I--do I go or stay?"

And Monsieur le Chevalier--he is Monsieur le Maréchal Duc now--got the
answer he wanted.



                               THE END.





                  THE CAPTAIN MORATTI'S LAST AFFAIR




                              CHAPTER I.

                           "ARCADES AMBO."


"Halt!" The word, which seemed to come from nowhere, rang out into the
crisp winter moonlight so sharply, so suddenly, so absolutely without
warning, that the Cavaliere Michele di Lippo, who was ambling
comfortably along, reined in his horse with a jerk; and with a start,
looked into the night. He had not to fret his curiosity above a
moment, for a figure gliding out from the black shadows of the pines,
fencing in each side of the lonely road, stepped full into the white
band of light, stretching between the darkness on either hand and
stood in front of the horse. As the two faced each other, it was not
the fact that there was a man in his path that made the rider keep a
restraining hand on his bridle. It was the persuasive force, the
voiceless command, in the round muzzle of an arquebuse pointed at his
heart, and along the barrel of which di Lippo could see the glint of
the moonlight, a thin bright streak ending in the wicked blinking star
of the lighted fuse. The cavaliere took in the position at a glance,
and being a man of resolution, hurriedly cast up his chances of escape
by spurring his horse, and suddenly riding down the thief. In a flash
the thought came and was dismissed. It was impossible; for the
night-hawk had taken his stand at a distance of about six feet off,
space enough to enable him to blow his quarry's heart out, well before
the end of any sudden rush to disarm him. The mind moves like
lightning in matters of this kind, and di Lippo surrendered without
condition. Though his heart was burning within him, he was outwardly
cool and collected. He had yielded to force he could not resist. Could
he have seen ever so small a chance, the positions might have been
reversed. As it was, Messer the bandit might still have to look to
himself, and his voice was icy as the night as he said: "Well! I have
halted. What more? It is chill, and I care not to be kept waiting."

The robber was not without humour, and a line of teeth showed, for an
instant, behind the burning match of the weapon he held steadily
before him. He did not, however, waste words. "Throw down your purse."

The cavaliere hesitated. Ducats were scarce with him, but the bandit
had a short patience. "_Diavolo!_ Don't you hear, signore?"

It was useless to resist. The fingers of the cavaliere fumbled under
his cloak, and a fat purse fell squab into the snow, where it lay, a
dark spot in the whiteness around, for all the world like a sleeping
toad. The bandit chuckled as he heard the plump thud of the purse, and
di Lippo's muttered curse was lost in the sharp order: "Get off the
horse."

"But----"

"I am in a hurry, signore." The robber blew on the match of his
arquebuse, and the match in its glow cast a momentary light on his
face, showing the outlines of high aquiline features, and the black
curve of a pair of long moustaches.

"_Maledetto!_" and the disgusted cavaliere dismounted, the scabbard of
his useless sword striking with a clink against the stirrup iron, and
he unwillingly swung from the saddle and stood in the snow--a tall
figure, lean and gaunt.

As he did this, the bandit stepped back a pace, so as to give him the
road. "Your excellency," he said mockingly, "is now free to pass--on
foot. A walk will doubtless remove the chill your excellency finds so
unpleasant."

But di Lippo made no advance. In fact, as his feet touched the snow,
he recovered the composure he had so nearly lost, and saw his way to
gain some advantage from defeat. It struck him that here was the very
man he wanted for an affair of the utmost importance. Indeed, it was
for just such an instrument that he had been racking his brains, as he
rode on that winter night through the Gonfolina defile, which
separates the middle and the lower valleys of the Arno. And now--a
hand turn--and he had found his man. True, an expensive find; but
cheap if all turned out well--that is, well from di Lippo's point of
view. This thing the cavaliere wanted done he could not take into his
own hands. Not from fear--it was no question of that; but because it
was not convenient; and Michele di Lippo never gave himself any
inconvenience, although it was sometimes thrust upon him in an
unpleasant manner by others. If he could but induce the man before him
to undertake the task, what might not be? But the knight of the road
was evidently very impatient.

"Blood of a king!" he swore, "are you going, signore? Think you I am
to stand here all night?"

"Certainly not," answered di Lippo in his even voice, "nor am I. But
to come to the point. I want a little business managed, and will pay
for it. You appear to be a man of courage--will you undertake the
matter?"

"_Cospetto!_ But you are a cool hand! Who are you?"

"Is it necessary to know? I offer a hundred crowns, fifty to be paid
to you if you agree, and fifty on the completion of the affair."

"A matter of the dagger?"

"That is for you to decide."

The bandit almost saw the snarl on di Lippo's lips as he dropped out
slowly: "You are too cautious, my friend--you think to the skin. The
rack will come whether you do my business or not." The words were not
exactly calculated to soothe, and called up an unpleasant vision
before the robber's eyes. A sudden access of wrath shook him. "Begone,
signore!" he burst out, "lest my patience exhausts itself, and I give
you a bed in the snow. Why I have spared your life, I know not.
Begone; warm yourself with a walk----"

"I will pay a hundred crowns," interrupted di Lippo.

"A hundred devils--begone!"

"As you please. Remember, it is a hundred crowns, and, on the faith of
a noble, I say nothing about tonight. Where can I find you, in case
you change your mind? A hundred crowns is a comfortable sum of money,
mind you."

There was no excitement about di Lippo. He spoke slowly and
distinctly. His cool voice neither rose nor dropped, but he spoke in a
steady, chill monotone. A hundred crowns _was_ a comfortable sum of
money. It was a sum not to be despised. For a tithe of that--nay, for
two pistoles--the Captain Guido Moratti would have risked his life
twice over, things had come to such a pass with him. Highway robbery
was not exactly his line, although sometimes, as on this occasion, he
had been driven to it by the straits of the times. But suppose this
offer was a blind? Suppose the man before him merely wanted to know
where to get at him, to hand him over to the tender mercies of the
thumbscrew and the rack? On the other hand, the man might be in
earnest--and a hundred crowns! He hesitated.

"A--hun--dred--crowns." The cavaliere repeated these words, and there
was a silence. Finally the bandit spoke:

"I frankly confess, signore, that stealing purses, even as I have done
to-day, is not my way; but a man must live. If you mean what you say,
there must be no half-confidences. Tell me who you are, and I will
tell you where to find me."

"I am the Cavaliere Michele di Lippo of Castel Lippo on the Greve."

"Where is Castel Lippo?"

"At the junction of the Arno and the Greve--on the left bank."

"Very well. In a week you will hear from me again."

"It is enough. You will allow me to ransom the horse. I will send you
the sum. On my word of honour, I have nothing to pay it at once."

"The signore's word of honour is doubtless very white. But a can in
the hand is a can in the hand, and I need a horse--Good-night!"

"Good-night! But a can in the hand is not always wine to the lips,
though a hundred crowns is ever a hundred crowns;" and saying this, di
Lippo drew his cloak over the lower part of his face, and turned
sharply to the right into the darkness, without so much as giving a
look behind him. His horse would have followed; but quick as thought,
Moratti's hand was on the trailing reins, and holding them firmly, he
stooped and picked up the purse, poising it at arm's-length in front
of him.

"Silver," he muttered, as his fingers felt the coins through the soft
leather--"thirty crowns at the most, perhaps an odd gold piece or
so--and now to be off. _Hola!_ Steady!" and mounting the horse, he
turned his head round, still talking to himself: "I am in luck. Cheese
falls on my macaroni--thirty broad pieces and a horse, and a hundred
crowns more in prospect. Captain Guido Moratti, the devil smiles on
you--you will end a Count. _Animo!_" He touched the horse with his
heels, and went forward at a smart gallop; and as he galloped, he
threw his head back and laughed loudly and mirthlessly into the night.

In the meantime it was with a sore heart that the cavaliere made his
way through the forest to the banks of the Arno, and then plodded
along the river-side, through the wood, by a track scarcely
discernible to any but one who had seen it many times. On his right
hand the river hummed drearily; on his left, the trees sighed in the
night-wind; and before him the narrow track wound, now up, then down,
now twisting amongst the pines in darkness, then stretching in front,
straight as a plumb-line. It was gall to di Lippo to think of the loss
of the crowns and the good horse; it was bitterness to trudge it in
the cold along the weary path that led to the ferry across the Arno,
which he would have to cross before reaching his own home; and he
swore deeply, under the muffling of his cloak, as he pressed on at his
roundest pace. He soon covered the two miles that lay between him and
the ferry; but it was past midnight ere he did this, and reaching the
ferryman's hut, battered at the door with the hilt of his sword.
Eventually he aroused the ferryman, who came forth grumbling. Had it
been any one else, honest Giuseppe would have told him to go hang
before he would have risen from his warm bed; but the Cavaliere
Michele was a noble, and, although poor, had a lance or two, and
Castel Lippo, which bore an ill name, was only a mangonel shot from
the opposite bank. So Giuseppe punted his excellency across; and his
excellency vented his spleen with a curse at everything in general,
and the bandit in particular, as he stepped ashore and hurried to his
dwelling. It was a steep climb that led up by a bridle-path to his
half-ruined tower, and di Lippo stood at the postern, and whistled on
his silver whistle, and knocked for many a time, before he heard the
chains clanking, and the bar put back. At last the door opened, and a
figure stood before him, a lantern in one hand.

"St. John! But it is your worship! We did not expect you until
sunrise. And the horse, excellency?"

"Stand aside, fool. I have been robbed, that is all. Yes--let the
matter drop; and light me up quick. Will you gape all night there?"

The porter, shutting the gate hastily, turned, and walking before his
master, led him across the courtyard. Even by the moonlight, it could
be seen that the flagstones were old and worn with age. In many places
they had come apart, and with the spring, sprouts of green grass and
white serpyllum would shoot up from the cracks. At present, these
fissures were choked with snow. Entering the tower by an arched door
at the end of the courtyard, they ascended a winding stair, which led
into a large but only partially furnished room. Here the man lit two
candles, and di Lippo, dropping his cloak, sank down into a chair,
saying: "Make up a fire, will you--and bring me some wine; after that,
you may go."

The man threw a log or two into the fireplace, where there was already
the remains of a fire, and the pinewood soon blazed up cheerfully.
Then he placed a flask of Orvieto and a glass at his master's elbow,
and wishing him good-night, left him.

Michele di Lippo poured himself out a full measure and drained it at a
draught. Drawing his chair close to the blazing wood, he stretched out
his feet, cased in long boots of Spanish leather, and stared into the
flames. He sat thus for an hour or so without motion. The candles
burned out, and the fire alone lit the room, casting strange shadows
on the moth-eaten tapestry of the hangings, alternately lighting and
leaving in darkness the corners of the room, and throwing its fitful
glow on the pallid features of the brooding man, who sat as if cut out
of stone. At last the cavaliere moved, but it was only to fling
another log on the flames. Then he resumed his former attitude, and
watched the fire. As he looked, he saw a picture. He saw wide lands,
lands rich with olive and vine, that climbed the green hills between
which the Aulella babbles. He saw the grey towers of the castle of
Pieve. Above the donjon, a broad flag flapped lazily in the air,
and the blazon on it--three wasps on a green field--was his own. He
was no longer the ruined noble, confined to his few acres, living like
a goat amongst the rocks of the Greve; but my lord count, ruffling it
again in Rome, and calling the mains with Riario, as in the good old
times ten years ago. Diavolo! But those were times when the Borgia
was Pope! What nights those were in the Torre Borgia! He had one of
Giulia Bella's gloves still, and there were dark stains on its
whiteness--stains that were red once with the blood of Monreale, who
wore it over his heart the day he ran him through on the Ripetta.
_Basta!_ That was twelve years ago! Twelve years! Twelve hundred
years it seemed. And he was forty now. Still young enough to run
another man through, however. _Cospetto!_ If the bravo would only
undertake the job, everything might be his! He would live again--or
perhaps! And another picture came before the dreamer. It had much to
do with death--a bell was tolling dismally, and a chained man was
walking to his end, with a priest muttering prayers into his ears. In
the background was a gallows, and a sea of heads, an endless swaying
crowd of heads, with faces that looked on the man with hate, and
tongues that jeered and shouted curses at him. And the voices of the
crowd seemed to merge into one tremendous roar of hatred as the
condemned wretch ascended the steps of the platform on which he was to
find a disgraceful death.

Michele di Lippo rose suddenly with a shiver and an oath:
"_Maledetto!_ I must sleep. It touches the morning, and I have been
dreaming too long."




                             CHAPTER II.

                    AT "THE DEVIL ON TWO STICKS."


It was mid-day, and the Captain Guido Moratti was at home in his
lodging in "The Devil on Two Sticks." Not an attractive address; but
then this particular hostel was not frequented by persons who were
squeamish about names, or--any other thing. The house itself lay in
the Santo Spirito ward of Florence, filling up the end of a
_chiassolino_ or blind alley in a back street behind the church of
Santa Felicità, and was well known to all who had "business" to
transact. It had also drawn towards it the attention of the _Magnifici
Signori_, and the long arm of the law would have reached it ere this
but for the remark made by the Secretary Machiavelli, "One does not
purify a city by stopping the sewers," he said; and added with a grim
sarcasm, "and any one of us might have an urgent affair to-morrow, and
need an agents--let the devil rest on his two sticks." And it was so.

Occasionally, the talons of Messer the Gonfaloniere would close on
some unfortunate gentleman who had at the time no "friends," and then
he was never seen again. But arrests were never made in the house, and
it was consequently looked upon as a secure place by its customers.
The room occupied by Moratti was on the second floor, and was lighted
by a small window which faced a high dead wall, affording no view
beyond that of the blackened stonework. The captain, being a single
man, could afford to live at his ease, and though it was mid-day, and
past the dinner hour, had only just risen, and was fortifying himself
with a measure of Chianti. He was seated in a solid-looking chair, his
goblet in his hand, and his long legs clothed in black and white
trunks, the Siena colours, resting on the table. The upper part of his
dress consisted of a closely fitting pied surcoat, of the same hues as
his trunks; and round his waist he wore a webbed chain belt, to which
was attached a plain, but useful-looking poniard. The black hair on
his head was allowed to grow long, and fell in natural curls to his
broad shoulders. He had no beard; but under the severe arch of his
nose was a pair of long dark moustaches that completely hid the mouth,
and these he wore in a twist that almost reached his ears. On the
table where his feet rested was his cap, from which a frayed feather
stuck out stiffly; likewise his cloak, and a very long sword in a
velvet and wood scabbard. The other articles on the table were a
half-empty flask of wine, a few dice, a pack of cards, a mask, a wisp
of lace, and a broken fan. The walls were bare of all ornament, except
over the entrance door, whence a crucified Christ looked down in His
agony over the musty room. A spare chair or two, a couple of valises
and a saddle, together with a bed, hidden behind some old and shabby
curtains, completed the furniture of the chamber; but such as it was,
it was better accommodation than the captain had enjoyed for many a
day. For be it known that "The Devil on Two Sticks" was meant for the
aristocrats of the "profession." The charges were accordingly high,
and there was no credit allowed. No! No! The _padrone_ knew better
than to trust his longest-sworded clients for even so small a matter
as a brown _paolo_. But at present Moratti was in funds, for thirty
broad crowns in one's pocket, and a horse worth full thirty more, went
a long way in those days, and besides, he had not a little luck at the
cards last night. He thrust a sinewy hand into his pocket, and jingled
the coins there, with a comfortable sense of proprietorship, and for
the moment his face was actually pleasant to look upon. The face was
an eminently handsome one. It was difficult to conceive that those
clear, bold features were those of a thief. They were rather those of
a soldier, brave, resolute, and hasty perhaps, though hardened, and
marked by excess. There was that in them which seemed to point to a
past very different from the present. And it had been so. But that
story is a secret, and we must take the captain as we find him,
nothing more or less than a bravo. Let it be remembered, however, that
this hideous profession, although looked upon with fear by all, was
not in those days deemed so dishonourable as to utterly cast a man out
of the pale of his fellows. Troches, the bravo of Alexander VI., was
very nearly made a cardinal; Don Michele, the strangler of Cesare
Borgia, became commander-in-chief of the Florentine army, and had the
honour of a conspiracy being formed against him--he was killed whilst
leaving the house of Chaumont. Finally, there was that romantic
scoundrel "Il Medighino," who advanced from valet to bravo, from bravo
to be a pirate chief and the brother of a pontiff, ending his days as
Marquis of Marignano and Viceroy of Bohemia. So that, roundly
speaking, if the profession of the dagger did lead to the galleys or
the scaffold, it as often led to wealth, and sometimes, as in the case
of Giangiacomo Medici, to a coronet. Perhaps some such thoughts as
these flitted in the captain's mind as he jingled his crowns and
slowly sipped his wine. His fellow-men had made him a wolf, and a wolf
he was now to the end of his spurs, as pitiless to his victims as they
had been to him. He was no longer young; but a man between two ages,
with all the strength and vitality of youth and the experience of
five-and-thirty, so that with a stroke of luck he might any day do
what the son of Bernardino had done. He had failed in everything up to
now, although he had had his chances. His long sword had helped to
stir the times when the Duke of Bari upset all Italy, and the people
used to sing:


               Cristo in cielo é il Moro in terra,
               Solo sa il fine di questa guerra.


He had fought at Fornovo and at Mertara; and in the breach at Santa
Croce had even crossed swords with the Count di Savelli, the most
redoubted knight, with the exception of Bayard, of the age. He had
been run through the ribs for his temerity; but it was an honour he
never forgot. Then other things had happened, and he had sunk, sunk to
be what he was, as many a better man had done before him. A knock at
the door disturbed his meditations. He set down his empty glass and
called out, "Enter!"

The door opened, and the Cavaliere Michele di Lippo entered the room.
Moratti showed no surprise, although the visit was a little
unexpected; but beyond pointing to a chair, gave di Lippo no other
greeting, saying simply: "Take a seat, signore--and shut the door
behind you. I did not expect you until to-morrow."

"True, captain; But you see I was impatient. I got your letter
yesterday, and, the matter being pressing, came here at once."

"Well--what is the business?"

The cavaliere's steel-grey eyes contracted like those of a cat when a
sudden light is cast upon them, and he glanced cautiously around him.
"This place is safe--no eavesdroppers?" he asked.

"None," answered Moratti; and slowly putting his feet down from the
table, pushed the wine towards di Lippo. "Help yourself, signore--No!
Well, as you wish. And now, your business?"

There was a silence in the room, and each man watched the other
narrowly. Moratti looked at the cavaliere's long hatchet face, at the
cruel close-set eyes, at the thin red hair showing under his velvet
cap, and at the straight line of the mouth, partly hidden by a
moustache, and short peaked beard of a slightly darker red than the
hair on di Lippo's head. Michele di Lippo, in his turn, keenly scanned
the seamed and haughty features of the bravo, and each man recognised
in the other the qualities he respected, if such a word may be used.
At last the cavaliere spoke: "As I mentioned, captain, my business is
one of the highest importance, and----"

"You are prepared to pay in proportion--eh?" and Moratti twirled his
moustache between his fingers.

"Exactly. I have made you my offer."

"But have not told me what you want done."

"I am coming to that. Permit me; I think I will change my mind;" and
as Moratti nodded assent, di Lippo poured himself out a glass of wine
and drained it slowly. When he had done this, he set the glass down
with extreme care, and continued: "I am, as you see, captain, no
longer a young man, and it is inconvenient to have to wait for an
inheritance"--and he grinned horribly.

"I see, cavalierei--you want me to anticipate matters a little--Well,
I am willing to help you if I can."

"It is a hundred crowns, captain, and the case lies thus. There is but
one life between me and the County of Pieve in the Val di Magra, and
you know how uncertain life is."

He paused; but as Guido Moratti said nothing, continued with his even
voice: "Should the old Count of Pieve die--and he is on the edge of
the grave--the estate will pass to his daughter. In the event of her
death----"

"_Whew!_" Moratti emitted a low whistle, and sat bolt upright. "So it
is the lady," he cried. "That is not my line, cavaliere. It is more a
matter of the poison-cup, and I don't deal in such things. Carry your
offer elsewhere."

"It will be a new experience, captain--and a hundred crowns."

"Blood of a king, man! do you think I hesitate over a paltry hundred
crowns? Had it been a man, it would have been different--but a woman!
No! No! It is not my way;" and he rose and paced the room.

"Tush, man! It is but a touch of your dagger, and you have done much
the same before."

Moratti faced di Lippo. "As you say, I have executed commissions
before, but never on a woman, and never on a man without giving him a
chance."

"You are too tender-hearted for your profession, captain. Have you
never been wronged by a woman? They can be more pitiless than men, I
assure you."

The bronze on Moratti's cheek paled to ashes, and his face hardened
with a sudden memory. He turned his back upon di Lippo, and stared out
of the window at the dead wall which was the only view. It was a
chance shot, but it had told. The cavaliere rose slowly and flung a
purse on the table. "Better give him the whole at once," he muttered.
"Come, captain," he added, raising his voice. "It will be over in a
moment; and after all, neither you nor I will ever see heaven. We
might as well burn for something; and if I mistake not, both you and I
are like those Eastern tigers, who once having tasted blood must go on
forever--see!" and he laid his lean hand on the bravo's shoulder, "why
not revenge on the whole sex the wrong done you by one----"

The captain swung round suddenly and shook off di Lippo's hand. "Don't
touch me," he cried; "at times like this I am dangerous. What demon
put into your mouth the words you have just used? They have served
your purpose--and she shall die. Count me out the money, the full
hundred--and go."

"It is there;" and di Lippo pointed with his finger to the purse. "You
will find the tale complete--a hundred crowns--count them at your
leisure. _Addio!_ captain. I shall hear good news soon, I trust."
Rubbing the palms of his hands together, he stepped softly from the
room.

Guido Moratti did not hear or answer him. His mind had gone back with
a rush for ten years, when the work of a woman had made him sink lower
than a beast. Such things happen to men sometimes. He had sunk like a
stone thrown into a lake; he had been destroyed utterly, and it was
sufficient to say that he lived now to prey on his fellow-creatures.
But he had never thought of the revenge that di Lippo had suggested.
Now that he did think of it, he remembered a story told in the old
days round the camp fires, when they were hanging on the rear of
Charles's retreating army, just before he turned and rent the League
at Fornovo. Rodrigo Gonzaga, the Spaniard, had told it of a countryman
of his, a native of Toledo, who for a wrong done to him by a girl had
devoted himself to the doing to death of women. It was horrible; and
at the time he had refused to believe it. Now he was face to face with
the same horror--nay, he had even embraced it. He had lost his soul;
but the price of it was not yet paid in revenge or gold, and, by
Heaven! he would have it. He laughed out as loudly and cheerlessly as
on that winter's night when he rode off through the snow; and laying
hands on the purse, tore it open, and the contents rolled out upon the
table. "The price of my soul!" he sneered as he held up a handful of
the coins, and let them drop again with a clash on the heap on the
table. "It is more than Judas got for his--ha! ha!"




                             CHAPTER III.

                              FELICITÀ.


Some few days after his interview with di Lippo, the Captain Guido
Moratti rode his horse across the old Roman bridge which at that time
spanned the Aulella, and directed his way towards the castle of Pieve,
whose outlines rose before him, cresting an eminence about a league
from the bridge. The captain was travelling as a person of some
quality, the better to carry out a plan he had formed for gaining
admission to Pieve, and a lackey rode behind him holding his valise.
He had hired horse and man in Florence, and the servant was an honest
fellow enough, in complete ignorance of his master's character and
profession. Both the captain and his man bore the appearance of long
travel, and in truth they had journeyed with a free rein; and now that
a stormy night was setting in, they were not a little anxious to reach
their point. The snow was falling in soft flakes, and the landscape
was grey with the driving mist, through which the outlines of the
castle loomed large and shadowy, more like a fantastic creation in
cloudland than the work of human hands. As the captain pulled down the
lapels of his cap to ward off the drift which was coming straight in
his face, the bright flare of a beacon fire shone from a tower of the
castle, and the rays from it stretched in broad orange bands athwart
the rolling mist, which threatened, together with the increasing
darkness, to extinguish all the view that was left, and make the
league to Pieve a road of suffering. With the flash of the fire a
weird, sustained howl came to the travellers in an eerie cadence; and
as the fearsome call died away, it was picked up by an answering cry
from behind, then another and yet another. There could be no mistaking
these signals; they meant pressing and immediate danger.

"Wolves!" shouted Moratti; and turning to his knave: "Gallop,
Tito!--else our bones will be picked clean by morning. Gallop!"

They struck their spurs into the horses; and the jaded animals, as if
realizing their peril, made a brave effort, and dashed off at their
utmost speed. It was none too soon, for the wolves, hitherto following
in silence, had given tongue at the sight of the fire; and as if
knowing that the beacon meant safety for their prey, and that they
were like to lose a dinner unless they hurried, laid themselves on the
track of the flying horses with a hideous chorus of yells. They could
not be seen for the mist; but they were not far behind. They were
going at too great a pace to howl now; but an occasional angry "yap"
reached the riders, and reached the horses too, whose instinct told
them what it meant; and they needed no further spurring, to make them
strain every muscle to put a distance between themselves and their
pursuers. Moratti thoroughly grasped the situation. He had experienced
a similar adventure in the Pennine Alps, when carrying despatches for
Paolo Orsini, with this difference, that then he had a fresh horse,
and could see where he was going; whereas now, although the distance
to Pieve was short, and in ten minutes he might be safe and with a
whole skin, yet a false step, a stumble, and nothing short of a
miracle could prevent him becoming a living meal to the beasts behind.

He carried, slung by a strap over his shoulder, a light bugle, which
he had often found useful before, but never so useful as now.
Thrusting his hand under his cloak, he drew it out, and blew a long
clear blast; and, to his joy, there came an answer through the storm
from the castle. Rescue was near at hand, and faster and faster they
flew; but as surely the wolves gained on them, and they could hear the
snarling of the leaders as they jostled against and snapped at each
other in their haste. Moratti looked over his shoulder. He could see
close behind a dark crescent moving towards them with fearful
rapidity. He almost gave a groan. It was too horrible to die thus! And
he dug his spurs again and again into the heaving flanks of his horse,
with the vain hope of increasing its speed. They had now reached the
ascent to Pieve. They could see the lights at the windows. In two
hundred yards there was safety; when Moratti's horse staggered under
him, and he had barely time to free his feet from the stirrups and
lean well back in the saddle ere the animal came down with a plunge.
Tito went by like a flash, as the captain picked himself up and faced
the wolves, sword in hand. There was a steep bank on the side of the
road. He made a dash to gain the summit of this; but had hardly
reached half-way up when the foremost wolf was upon him, and had
rolled down again with a yell, run through the heart. His fellows tore
him to shreds, and in a moment began to worry at the struggling horse,
whose fore-leg was broken. In a hand-turn the matter was ended, and
the wretched beast was no longer visible, all that could be seen being
a black swaying mass of bodies, as the pack hustled and fought over
the dead animal.

Nevertheless, there were three or four of the wolves who devoted their
attention to Moratti, and he met them with the courage of despair. But
the odds were too many, and he began to feel that he could not hold
out much longer. One huge monster, his shaggy coat icy with the sleet,
had pulled him to his knees, and it was only a lucky thrust of the
dagger, he held in his left hand, that saved him. He regained his feet
only to be dragged down again, and to rise yet once more. He was
bleeding and weak, wounded in many places, and the end could not be
far off. It was not thus that he had hoped to die; and he was dying
like a worried lynx.

The thought drove him to madness. He was of Siena, and somewhere in
his veins, though he did not know it, ran the blood of the Senonian
Gauls, and it came out now--he went Berserker, as the old northern
pirates were wont to do. Sliding down the bank, he jumped full into
the pack, striking at them in a dumb fury. He was hardly human himself
now, and he plunged his sword again and again into the heaving mass
around him, and felt no pain from the teeth of the wolves as they rent
his flesh. A fierce mad joy came upon him. It was a glorious fight
after all, and he was dying game. It was a glorious fight, and, when
he felt a grisly head at his throat, and the weight of his assailant
brought him down once more, he flung aside his sword, and grappling
his enemy with his hands, tore asunder the huge jaws, and flung the
body from him with a yell. Almost at that very instant there was the
sharp report of firearms, the rush of hurrying feet, and the blaze of
torches. Moratti, half on his knees, was suddenly pulled to his feet
by a strong hand, and supported by it he stood, dizzy and faint,
bleeding almost everywhere, but safe. The wolves had fled in silence,
vanishing like phantoms across the snow; and shot after shot was fired
in their direction by the rescue party.

"_Per Bacco!_" said the man who was holding Moratti up; "but it was an
affair between the skin and the flesh, signore--steady!" and his arm
tightened round the captain. As he did this, a long defiant howl
floated back to them through the night, and Guido Moratti knew no
more. He seemed to have dropped suddenly, into an endless night. He
seemed to be flying through space, past countless millions of stars,
which, bright themselves, were unable to illumine the abysmal darkness
around, and then--there was nothing.

When Moratti came to himself again, he was lying in a bed, in a large
room, dimly lighted by a shaded lamp, set on a tall Corinthian pillar
of marble. After the first indistinct glance around him, he shut his
eyes, and was lost in a dreamy stupor. In a little, he looked again,
and saw that the chamber was luxuriously fitted, and that he was not
alone, for, kneeling at a _prie-dieu_, under a large picture of a
Madonna and Child, was the figure of a woman. Her face was from him;
but ill as he was, Moratti saw that the tight-fitting dress showed a
youthful and perfect figure, and that her head was covered with an
abundance of red-gold hair. The man was still in the shadowland caused
by utter weakness, and for a moment he thought that this was nothing
but a vision of fancy; but he rallied half unconsciously, and looked
again; and then, curiosity overcoming him, attempted to turn so as to
obtain a better view, and was checked by a twinge of pain, which,
coming suddenly, brought an exclamation to his lips. In an instant the
lady rose, and moving towards him, bent over the bed. As she did this,
their eyes met, and the fierce though dulled gaze of the bravo saw
before him a face of ideal innocence, of such saintlike purity, that
it might have been a dream of Raffaelle. She placed a cool hand on his
hot forehead, and whispered softly: "Be still--and drink this--you
will sleep." Turning to a side table, she lifted a silver goblet
therefrom, and gave him to drink. The draught was cool and refreshing,
and he gathered strength from it.

"Where am I?" he asked; and then, with a sudden courtesy,
"Madonna--pardon me--I thank you."

"Hush!" she answered, lifting a small hand. "You are in Pieve, and you
have been very ill. But I must not talk--sleep now, signore."

"I remember now," he said dreamily--"the wolves; but it seems so long
ago."

She made no reply, but stepped softly out of the room, and was gone.
Moratti would have called out after her; but a drowsiness came on him,
and closing his eyes, he slept.

It takes a strong man some time to recover from wounds inflicted by a
wild animal; and when a man has, like Guido Moratti, lived at both
ends, it takes longer still, and it was weeks before the captain was
out of danger. He never saw his fair visitor again. Her place was
taken by a staid and middle-aged nurse, and he was visited two or
three times daily by a solemn-looking physician. But although he did
not see her whom he longed to see, there was a message both morning
and evening from the Count of Pieve and his daughter, hoping the
invalid was better--the former regretting that his infirmities
prevented his paying a personal visit, and the inquiries of the latter
being always accompanied by a bouquet of winter flowers. But strange
as it may seem, when he was under the influence of the opiate they
gave him nightly, he was certain of the presence of the slight
graceful figure of the lady of the _prie-dieu_, as he called her to
himself. He saw again the golden-red hair and the sweet eyes, and felt
again the touch of the cool hand. He began to think that this bright
presence which lit his dreams was but a vision after all, and used to
long for the night and the opiate.

At last one fine morning Tito appeared, and began to set out and brush
the captain's apparel as if nothing had ever happened. Moratti watched
him for a space, and then rising up against his pillows, spoke:
"Tito!"

"Signore!"

"How is it that you have not been here before?"

"I was not allowed, Excellency, until to-day--your worship was too
ill."

"Then I am better."

"Excellency!"

There was a silence of some minutes, and the captain spoke again:
"Tito!"

"Signore!"

"Have you seen the Count and his daughter?"

"Excellency!"

"What are they like?"

"The Count old, and a cripple. Madonna Felicità, small, thin,
red-haired like my wife Sancia."

Moratti sank down again upon the bed, a satisfied smile upon his lips.
So there was truth in his dreams. The vision of the night was a
reality. He would see her soon, as soon as he could rise, and he was
fast getting well, very fast. He had gone back many years in his
illness. He had thoughts stirred within him that he had imagined dead
long ago. He was the last man to day-dream, to build castles in the
air; but as he lay idly watching Tito, who was evidently very busy
cleaning something--for he was sitting on a low chair with his back
towards the captain, and his elbow moving backwards and forwards
rapidly--the bravo pictured himself Guido Moratti as he might have
been, a man able to look all men in the face, making an honourable way
for himself, and worthy the love of a good woman. The last thought
brought before him a fair face and sweet eyes, and a dainty head
crowned with red-gold hair, and the strong man let his fancy run on
with an uprising of infinite tenderness in his heart. He was lost in a
cloudland of dreams.

"Signore!"

Tito's harsh voice had pulled down the castle in Spain, and Tito
himself was standing at the bedside holding a bright and glittering
dagger in his hand. But he had done more than upset his master's
dreams. He had, all unwittingly, brought him back in a flash to the
hideous reality, for, as a consequence of his long illness, of the
weeks of fever and delirium, Moratti had clean forgotten the dreadful
object of his coming to Pieve. It all came back to him with a blinding
suddenness, and he closed his eyes with a shudder of horror as Tito
laid the poniard upon the bed, asking: "Will the signore see if the
blade is keen enough? A touch of the finger will suffice."




                             CHAPTER IV.

                   CONCLUSION--THE TORRE DOLOROSA.


Days were yet to pass before Guido Moratti was able to leave his
chamber; but at last the leech who attended him said he might do so
with safety; and later on, the steward of the household brought a
courteous invitation from the Count of Pieve to dine with him. As
already explained, Moratti had not as yet seen his host; and since he
was well enough to sit up, there were no more dreamy visions of the
personal presence of Felicità. He had made many resolutions whilst
left to himself, and had determined that as soon as he was able to
move he would leave the castle, quit Italy, and make a new name for
himself, or die in the German wars. He was old enough to build no
great hopes on the future; but fortune might smile on him, and
then--many things might happen. At any rate, he would wipe the slate
clean, and there should be no more ugly scores on it.

Not that he was a reformed man; he was only groping his way back to
light. Men do not cast off the past as a snake sheds his skin. He knew
that well enough, but he knew, too, that he had seen a faint track
back to honour; and difficult as it was, he had formed a determination
to travel by it. He had been so vile, he had sunk so low, that there
were moments when a despair came on him; but with a new country and
new scenes, and the little flame of hope that was warming his dead
soul back to life, there might yet be a chance. He knew perfectly that
he was in love, and when a man of his age loves, it is for the
remainder of his life. He was aware--none better--that his love was
madness, all but an insult, and that it was worse than presumption to
even entertain the thought that he had inspired any other feeling
beyond that of pity in the heart of Felicità. It is enough to say that
he did not dare to hope in this way; but he meant to so order his
future life, as to feel that any such sentiment as love in his heart
towards her would not be sacrilege.

He sent back a civil answer to the invitation; and a little after
eleven, descended the stairway which led from his chamber to the
Count's apartments, looking very pale and worn, but very handsome. For
he was, in truth, a man whose personal appearance took all eyes. The
apartments of the Count were immediately below Moratti's own chamber,
and on entering, he saw the old knight himself reclining in a large
chair. He was alone, except for a hound which lay stretched out on the
hearth, its muzzle between its forepaws, and a dining-table set for
three was close to his elbow. Bernabo of Pieve received his guest with
a stately courtesy, asking pardon for being unable to rise, as he was
crippled. "They clipped my wings at Arx Sismundea, captain--before
your time; but of a truth I am a glad man to see you strong again. It
was a narrow affair."

"I cannot thank you in words, Count; you and your house have placed a
debt on me I can never repay."

"Tush, man! There must be no talk of thanks. If there are to be any,
they are due to the leech, and to Felicità, my daughter. She is all I
have left, for my son was killed at Santa Croce."

"I was there, Count."

"And knew him?"

"Alas, no. I was on the side of Spain."

"With the besieged, and he with the League. He was killed on the
breach--poor lad."

At this moment a curtain at the side of the room was lifted, and
Felicità entered. She greeted Moratti warmly, and with a faint flush
on her cheeks, inquired after his health, hoping he was quite strong
again.

"So well, Madonna, that I must hurry on my journey to-morrow."

"To-morrow!" Her large eyes opened wide in astonishment, and there was
a pain in her look. "Why," she continued, "it will be a fortnight ere
you can sit in the saddle again."

"It might have been never, but for you," he answered gravely, and her
eyes met his, and fell. At this moment the steward announced that the
table was ready; and by the time the repast was ended, Moratti had
forgotten his good resolutions for instant departure, and had promised
to stay for at least a week, at the urgent intercession of both the
Count and his daughter. He knew he was wrong in doing so, and that,
whatever happened, it was his duty to go at once; but he hesitated
with himself. He would give himself one week of happiness, for it was
happiness to be near her, and then--he would go away forever. And she
would never know, in her innocence and purity, that Guido Moratti,
bravo--he shuddered at the infamous word--loved her better than all
the world beside, and that for her sake he had become a new man.

After dinner the Count slept, and, the day being bright, they stepped
out into a large balcony and gazed at the view. The balcony, which
stretched out from a low window of the dining chamber, terminated on
the edge of a precipice which dropped down a clear two hundred feet;
and leaning over the moss-grown battlements, they looked at the white
winter landscape before them. Behind rose the tower they had just
quitted, and Felicità, turning, pointed to it, saying: "We call this
the Torre Dolorosa."

"A sad name, Madonna. May I ask why?"

"Because all of our house who die in their beds die here."

"And yet you occupy this part of the castle."

"Oh, I do not. My chamber is there--in Count Ligo's Tower;" and she
pointed to the right, where another grey tower rose from the keep.
"But my father likes to occupy the Torre Dolorosa himself. He says he
is living with his ancestors--to whom he will soon go, as he always
adds."

"May the day be far distant."

And she answered "Amen."

After this, they went in, and the talk turned on other matters. The
week passed and then another, but at last the day came for Moratti's
departure. He had procured another horse. It was indeed a gift which
the old Count pressed upon him, and he had accepted it with much
reluctance, but much gratitude. In truth, the kindness of these people
towards him was unceasing, and Moratti made great strides towards his
new self in that week. He was to have started after the mid-day
dinner; but with the afternoon he was not gone, and sunset found him
on the balcony of the Torre Dolorosa with Felicità by his side.

"You cannot possibly go to-night," she said.

"I will go to-morrow, then," replied Moratti, and she looked away from
him.

It was a moment of temptation. Almost did a rush of words come to the
captain's lips. He felt as if he must take her in his arms and tell
her that he loved her as man never loved woman. It was an effort; but
he was getting stronger in will daily, and he crushed down the
feeling.

"It is getting chill for you," he said; "we had better go in."

"Tell me," she answered, not heeding his remark, "tell me exactly
where you are going?"

"I do not know--perhaps to join Piccolomini in Bohemia--perhaps to
join Alva in the Low Countries--wherever a soldier's sword has work to
do."

"And you will come back?"

"Perhaps."

"A great man, with a _condotta_ of a thousand lances--and forget
Pieve."

"As God is my witness--never--but it is chill, Madonna--come in."

When they came in, Bernabo of Pieve was not alone, for standing close
to the old man, his back to the fire, and rubbing his hands softly
together, was the tall, gaunt figure of the Cavaliere Michele di
Lippo.

"A sudden visit, dear cousin," he said, greeting Felicità, and turning
his steel-grey eyes, with a look of cold inquiry in them, on Moratti.

"The Captain Guido Moratti--my cousin, the Cavaliere di Lippo."

"Of Castel Lippo, on the Greve," put in di Lippo. "I am charmed to
make the acquaintance of the Captain Moratti. Do you stay long in
Pieve, captain?"

"I leave to-morrow." Moratti spoke shortly. His blood was boiling, as
he looked on the gloomy figure of the cavaliere, who watched him
furtively from under his eyelids, the shadow of a sneer on his face.
He was almost sick with shame when he thought how he was in di
Lippo's hands, how a word from him could brand him with ignominy
beyond repair. Some courage, however, came back to him with the
thought that, after all, he held cards as well, as for his own sake,
di Lippo would probably remain quiet.

"So soon!" said di Lippo with a curious stress on the word soon, and
then added, "That is bad news."

"I have far to go, signore," replied Moratti coldly, and the
conversation then changed. It was late when they retired; and as the
captain bent over Felicità's hand, he held it for a moment in his own
broad palm, and said: "It is good-bye, lady, for I go before the dawn
to-morrow."

She made no answer; but, with a sudden movement, detached a bunch of
winter violets she wore at her neck, and thrusting them in Moratti's
hand, turned and fled. The Count was half asleep, and did not notice
the passage; but di Lippo said with his icy sneer: "Excellent--you
work like an artist, Moratti."

"I do not understand you;" and turning on his heel, the captain strode
off to his room.

An hour or so later, he was seated in a low chair, thinking. His
valise lay packed, and all was ready for his early start. He still
held the violets in his hand, but his face was dark with boding
thoughts. He dreaded going and leaving Felicità to the designs of di
Lippo. There would be other means found by di Lippo to carry out his
design; and with a groan, the captain rose and began to pace the room.
He was on the cross with anxiety. If he went without giving warning of
di Lippo's plans, he would still be a sharer in the murder--and the
murder of Felicità, for a hair of whose head he was prepared to risk
his soul. If, on the other hand, he spoke, he would be lost forever in
her eyes. Although it was winter, the room seemed to choke him, and he
suddenly flung open the door and, descending the dim stairway, went
out into the balcony. It was bright with moonlight, and the night was
clear as crystal. He leaned over the battlements and racked his mind
as to his course of action. At last he resolved. He would take the
risk, and speak out, warn Bernabo of Pieve at all hazards, and would
do so at once. He turned hastily, and then stopped, for before him in
the moonlight stood the Cavaliere Michele di Lippo.

"I sought you in your chamber, captain," he said in his biting voice,
"and not finding you, came here----"

"And how did you know I would be here?"

"Lovers like the moonlight, and you can see the light from her window
in Ligo's Tower," said di Lippo, and added sharply: "So you are
playing false, Moratti."

The captain made no answer; there was a singing in his ears, and a
sudden and terrible thought was working. His hand was on the hilt of
his dagger, a spring, a blow, and di Lippo would be gone. And no one
would know. But the cavaliere went on, unheeding his silence.

"You are playing false, Moratti. You are playing for your own hand
with my hundred crowns. You think your ship has come home. Fool! Did
you imagine I would allow this? But I still give you a chance. Either
do my business to-night--the way is open--or to-morrow you are laid by
the heels as a thief and a bravo. What will your Felicità----"

"Dog--speak her name again, and you die!" Moratti struck him across
the face with his open palm, and Michele di Lippo reeled back a pace,
his face as white as snow. It was only a pace, however, for he
recovered himself at once, and sprung at Moratti like a wild-cat. The
two closed. They spoke no word, and nothing could be heard but their
laboured breath as they gripped together. Their daggers were in their
hands; but each man knew this, and had grasped the wrist of the other.
Moratti was more powerful; but his illness had weakened him, and the
long lean figure of Michele di Lippo was as strong as a wire rope.
Under the quiet moon and the winter stars, they fought, until at last
di Lippo was driven to the edge of the parapet, and in the moonlight
he saw the meaning in Moratti's set face. With a superhuman effort, he
wrenched his hand free, and the next moment his dagger had sunk to the
hilt in the captain's side, and Moratti's grasp loosened, but only for
an instant. He was mortally wounded, he knew. He was going to die; but
it would not be alone. He pressed di Lippo to his breast. He lifted
him from his feet, and forced him through an embrasure which yawned
behind. Here, on its brink, the two figures swayed for an instant, and
then the balcony was empty, and from the deep of the precipice two
hundred feet below, there travelled upwards the sullen echo of a dull
crash, and all was quiet again.


                          *   *   *   *   *


When the stars were paling, the long howl of a wolf rang out into the
stillness. It reached Felicità in Count Ligo's Tower, and filled her
with a nameless terror. "Guard him, dear saints," she prayed; "shield
him from peril, and hold him safe."





                        THE TREASURE OF SHAGUL


It was past two o'clock, and Aladin, the elephant-driver, had gathered
together his usual audience under the shade of the mango tree near the
elephant-shed. Aladin was a noted story-teller; he had a long memory,
and an exhaustless fund of anecdote. It was ten years since he had
come from Nepaul with Moula Piari, the big she-elephant, and for ten
years he had delighted the inhabitants of the canal-settlement at
Dadupur with his tales. It was his practice to tell one story daily,
never more than one; and his time for this relaxation was an hour or
so after the midday meal, when he would sit on a pile of _sal_ logs,
under the mango tree, and his small audience, collecting round him in
a semi-circle, would wait patiently until the oracle spoke. No one
ever attempted to ask him to begin. Once Bullen, the water-carrier,
the son of Bishen, after waiting in impatient expectation through ten
long minutes of solemn silence, had suggested that it was time for
Aladin to commence. At this the old man rose in wrath, and asking the
water-carrier if he was his slave, smote him over the ear, and stalked
off to the elephant-shed. For three days there was no story-telling,
and Bullen, the son of Bishen, had a hard time of it with his fellows.
Finally matters were adjusted; both Aladin and Bullen were persuaded
by Gunga Din, the tall Burkundaz guard, to forget the past, and
affairs went on in the old way. That was three years ago, but the
lesson had not been forgotten. So although it happened on this
April afternoon, that all the elephant-driver's old cronies were
there,--Gunga Dino the Burkundaz, Dulaloo the white-haired Sikh
messenger who had been orderly to Napier of Magdala, Piroo Ditta
the telegraph-clerk, and Gobind Ram the canal-accountant, with a
half-score others--yet not one of them ventured to disturb the silence
of Aladin, as he sat, gravely stroking his beard, on the ant-eaten
_sal_ logs which had mouldered there for so many years. They were the
remains of a wrecked raft that had come down in a July flood, and
having been rescued from the water, were stacked under the mango tree
for the owner to claim. No owner ever came, but they had served as
food for the white ants, and as a bench for Aladin, for many a year.
The afternoon was delicious; a soft breeze was blowing, and the leaves
of the trees tinkled overhead. Above the muffled roar of the canal,
pouring through the open sluices, came the clear bell-like notes of a
blackbird, who piped joyously to himself from a snag that stood up,
jagged and sharp, out of the clear waters of the Some. To the north
the Khyarda and Kalessar Duns extended in long lines of yellow, brown,
and grey, and above them rose the airy outlines of the lower
Himalayas, while higher still, in the absolute blue of the sky,
towered the white peaks of the eternal snows. Beeroo, the Sansi, saw
the group under the mango tree as he crossed the canal-bridge, and
hastened towards it. Beeroo was a member of a criminal tribe, a tribe
of nomads who lived by hunting and stealing, who are to be found in
every Indian fair as acrobats, jugglers, and fortune-tellers, or
tramping painfully through the peninsula with a tame bear or
performing monkeys. In short the Sansis are very similar to gipsies,
if they are not, indeed, the parent stock from which our own
"Egyptians" spring. Beeroo came up to the sitters, but as he was of
low caste, or rather of no caste, he took up his position a little
apart, leaning on a long knotted bamboo staff, his coal-black eyes
glancing keenly around him. "It is Beeroo," said Dulaloo the Sikh, and
with this greeting lapsed into silence. Aladin ceased stroking his
henna-stained beard, and looked at the new-comer. "Ai, Beeroo! What
news?"

"There is a tiger at Hathni Khoond, and I have marked him down. Is the
Sahib here?"

"The Sahib sleeps now," replied Aladin; "it is the time for his
noontide rest. He will awaken at four o'clock."

"I will see His Honour then," replied Beeroo, "and there will be a
hunt to-morrow."

"Is it a big tiger?" asked Bullen, the son of Bishen.

"Aho!" and the Sansi, sliding his hands down the bamboo staff, sank to
a sitting posture.

"When was it the Sahib slew his last tiger?" asked Piroo Ditta, the
telegraph-clerk.

"Last May, at Mohonagh, near the temple," answered Aladin; "I remember
well, for the elephant lost a toenail in fording the river-bed--poor
beast!"

"At Mohonagh! That is where the Shagul Tree is," said Gobind Ram.

"True, brother. Hast heard the tale?"

There was a chorus of "noes," that drowned Gobind Ram's "yes," and
Aladin, taking a long pull at his water-pipe, began:

"When Raja Sham Chand had ruled in Suket for six years, he fell into
evil ways, and abandoning the shrine of Mohonagh, where his fathers
had worshipped for generations, set up idols to a hundred and fifty
gods. Prem Chand, the high priest of Mohonagh, cast himself at the
Raja's feet, and expostulated with him in vain, for Sham Chand only
laughed, saying Mohonagh was old and blind. Then he mocked the priest,
and Prem Chand threw dust on his own head, and departed sore at heart.
So Mohonagh was deserted, and the Raja wasted his substance among
dancing-girls and the false priests who pandered to him. About this
time Sham Chand, being a fool although a king, put his faith in the
word of the emperor at Delhi, and came down from the hills to find
himself a prisoner. In his despair the Raja called upon each one of
his hundred and fifty gods to save him, promising half his kingdom if
his prayers were answered; but there was no reply. At last the Raja
bethought him of the neglected Mohonagh, and falling on his knees
implored the aid of the god, making him the same promise of half his
kingdom, and vowing that if he were but free, he would put aside his
evil ways, return to the faith of his fathers, and destroy the temples
of his false gods. As he prayed he heard a bee buzzing in his cell,
and watching it, saw it creep into a hollow between two of the bricks
in the wall, and then creep out again, and buzz around the room. Sham
Chand put his hand to the bricks and found they were loose. He put
them back carefully, and waited till night. Under cover of the dark he
set to work once more, and removing brick after brick, found that he
could make his passage through the wall. This he did and effected his
escape. When he came back to Suket he kept his vow, and more than
this. Within the walls of the _mandar_ of Mohonagh grows a _shagul_,
or wild pear tree. On this tree the Raja nailed a hundred and fifty
gold mohurs, a coin for each one of the false gods whose idols he
destroyed, and decreed that every one in Suket who had a prayer
answered, should affix a coin or a jewel to the tree. That was a
hundred years ago, and now the stem of the Shagul Tree is covered with
coins and jewels to the value of _lakhs_. I saw it with my own eyes.
This is not all, for when at Mohonagh I heard that the god strikes
blind any thief who attempts to steal but a leaf from the tree.
_Bus!_--there is no more to tell."

"_Wah_! _Wah!_" exclaimed the listeners, and Beeroo put in, "Lakhs of
rupees didst thou say, Mahoutjee?"

"I have said what I have said, O Sansi, and thou hast heard. Hast thou
a mind to be struck blind?"

Beeroo made no answer, and the group shortly afterwards broke up. But
Gobind Ram, the canal-accountant, who knew the story of the Shagul
Tree, went straight to his quarters. Here he wrote a brief note on a
piece of soft yellow paper, and sealed it carefully. Then he drew
forth a pigeon from a cage in a corner of the room, and fastening the
letter to the bird, freed the pigeon with a toss into the air. The
carrier circled slowly thrice above the _neem_ trees, and then
spreading its strong slate-coloured wings, flew swiftly towards the
hills. Gobind Ram watched the speck in the sky until it vanished
from sight, then he went in, muttering to himself, "The high priest
will know in an hour that Beeroo the Sansi has heard of the Shagul
Tree--Ho, Aladin, thou hast too long a beard and too long a tongue,"
and the subtle Brahmin squatted himself down to smoke.

An hour afterwards, as Aladin was taking the she-elephant to water, he
saw a figure going at a long slouching trot along the yellow sandbanks
of the Some, making directly towards the north. The old man shaded his
eyes with his hands and looked keenly at it; but his sight was not
what it was, and he turned to Mahboob, the elephant-cooly, who would
step into his shoes some day, when he died, and asked: "See'st thou
that figure on the sandbank there, Mahboob?"

"It is the Sansi," answered Mahboob. "Behold! He limps on the left
foot, where the leopard clawed him at Kara Ho. Perchance the Sahib
will not hear of the tiger to-day."

"If ever, Mahboob," answered the Mahout; "would that mine eyes were
young again. _Hai!_" and he tapped Moula Piari's bald head with his
driving-hook, for her long trunk was reaching out to grasp a bundle of
green grass from the head of a grass-cutter, who was bearing in fodder
for the Sahib's pony.

Mahboob was not mistaken; it was Beeroo. When the party broke up, he
alone remained apparently absorbed in thought. After a time he took
some tobacco from an embroidered pouch hanging at his waist, crushed
it in the palm of his hand, and rolled a cone-shaped cigarette with
the aid of a leaf, fastening the folds of the leaf together with a
small dry stick which he stuck through the cigarette like a hair-pin.
At this he sucked, his forehead contracted into a frown, and his
bead-like eyes fixed steadily before him. Finally he rose quickly, as
one who has made a sudden resolve.

"The tiger can wait for the Sahib," he said to himself; "but _lakhs_
of rupees--they wait also--for me. I will go and worship at Mohonagh.
The idol will surely make the convert a gift."

Laughing softly to himself, he stole off with long cat-like steps in
the direction of the river. He forded the Some where it was crossed by
the telegraph-line, and the water was but breast-deep. Once on the
opposite bank, he shook himself like a dog, and breaking into a trot,
headed straight for the hills. His way led up a narrow and steep
track, hedged in with thorns over which the purple convolvulus twined
in a confused network. On either hand were sparse fields of gram and
corn, which ran in lozenge shapes up the low hillsides, ending in a
tangle of underwood, beyond which rose the solid outlines of the
forest. As the sun was setting he came to a long narrow ravine, over
which the road crossed. Here he stopped, and instead of keeping to the
road, turned abruptly to the right and trotted on. In the darkening
woods above him he heard the cry of a panther, and the alarmed
jabbering of the monkeys in the trees above their most dreaded enemy.
Beeroo marked the spot with a glance as he went on: "I will buy
a gun when I come back from Mohonagh," he muttered to himself, "a
two-barrelled gun of English make. The Thanadar at Thakot has one for
sale, a _birich-lodas_;[1] and then I will shoot that panther."
_Hough_! _Hough!_ The cry of the animal rang through the forest again,
as if in assent to his thoughts, and Beeroo continued his way. Just as
the sun sank and darkness was setting in, he saw the wavering glimmer
of a circle of camp-fires and the outlines of figures moving against
the light. The flare of the burning wood discovered also a few low
tents, shaped like casks cut in half lengthwise, and lit up with red
the grey fur of a number of donkeys that were tethered within the
radius of the fires. In a little time he heard the barking of dogs,
and five minutes later was with the tents of his tribe.

-----------------------------------

Footnote 1: Breechloader.

-----------------------------------

One or two men exchanged brief greetings with him, and answering them,
he stepped up to the centre fire, where a tall good-looking woman
addressed him. "Aho, Beeroo, is it you? Is the hunt to be to-morrow?"

"The Sahib was asleep," answered Beeroo; "give me to eat."

The woman brought him food. It was a stew made of the flesh of a
porcupine that had been kept warm in an earthenware dish, and Beeroo
ate heartily of this, quenching his thirst with a draught of the fiery
spirit made from the blossoms of the _mhowra_, after which he began to
smoke once more, using a small clay pipe called a _chillum_. His wife,
for so the woman was, made no attempt to converse with him, but left
him to the company of his tobacco and his thoughts. Beeroo sat moodily
puffing blue curls of smoke from his pipe, and with a black blanket
drawn over his shoulders, stared steadily into the fire. So he sat for
hours, no one disturbing him, sat until the camp had gone to rest, and
the wind alone was awake and sighing through the forest. Sagoo, his
big white hound, came close to him, and lay by his side, as if to hint
that it was time to sleep. Beeroo stroked the lean, muscular flank of
the dog, and looked around him. "In a little time," he said to
himself, "I will be Beeroo Naik, with a village of my own and wide
lands. Beeroo Naik," he repeated softly to himself, with a lingering
pride on the title implied in the last word. Then he rolled himself up
in his blanket; Sagoo snuggled beside him, and they slept.

Beeroo awoke long before sunrise. He drank some milk, stole into his
tent, and crept out again with a stout canvas haversack in his hands.
Into this sack, which contained other things besides, he stuffed some
broken meat and bread made of Indian corn, and slung is over his
shoulders. Then grasping his staff, he gave a last look around him,
and plunged into the jungle. Sagoo would have followed, but Beeroo
ordered him back, and the hound with drooping tail and wistful eyes
watched the figure of his master until it was lost in the gloom of the
trees. Beeroo walked on tirelessly, and by midday was far in the
hills. He could go from sunrise to sunset at that long trotting pace
of his, rest a little, eat a little, and then keep on till the sun
rose again. He was now high up in the hills. The _sal_ trees had given
place to the screw-pine, silk-cotton and mango were replaced by
holm-oak and walnut. In the tangle of the low bushes the dog-rose and
wild jasmine bloomed, and the short green of the grass was spangled
with the wood violet, the amaranth, and the pimpernel. Far below the
Jumna hummed down to the plains in a white lashing flood, and the
voice of the distant river reached him, soft and dreamy, through the
murmur of the pines. As he glanced into the deep of the valleys, a
blue pheasant rose with its whistling call, and with widespread wings
sailed slowly down into the mist below. The sunlight caught the
splendour of his plumage, and he dropped like a jewel into the pearl
grey of the vapour that clung to the mountain-side. Beeroo looked at
the bird for a moment, and then lifting his gaze, fixed it on a white
spot on the summit of the forest-covered hill to his left. He made out
a cone-like dome, surmounting a square building, built like an eagle's
nest at the edge of the precipice which fell sheer for a thousand feet
to the silver ribbon of the river. It was the _mandar_, or temple of
Mohonagh, and so clear was the air, that it seemed as if Beeroo had
only to stretch out his staff to touch the white spot before him. He
knew better than that, however, and knew too that the sun must rise
again before he could rest himself beneath the walls of the temple,
and look on the treasure of the shagul.

"_Ram_, _ram_, Mohonagh!" he cried, saluting the far-off shrine in
mockery, and then continued his way. When he had gone thus for another
hour or so, he came upon the traces of a recent encampment. There was
a heap of stale fodder, one or two earthenware pots were lying about,
and the remains of a fire still smouldered under the lee of a walnut
tree. Hard by, on the opposite side of the track, a huge rock rose
abruptly, and from its scarred side a bubbling spring plashed
musically into a natural basin, and, overflowing this, ran across the
path in a small stream, past the tree and over the precipice, where it
lost itself in a spray in which a quivering rainbow hung. Here Beeroo
halted, and having broken his fast and slaked his thirst, proceeded to
totally alter his personal appearance. This he did by the simple
process of removing his turban of Turkey red and his warm vest, the
only covering he had for the upper portion of his body. After this he
let down his long straight hair, which he wore coiled in a knot, to
fall freely over his shoulders. Then he smeared himself all over, head
and all, with ashes from the fire; and when this was done he stood up
a grisly phantom in which no one would have recognised the Sansi
tracker. He hid his sandals and the wearing apparel he had removed in
a secure place in a cleft in the rocks, and marking the spot
carefully, went on--no longer Beeroo the Sansi, a man of no caste, but
a holy mendicant. In his left hand he held one of the earthen vessels
he had found under the walnut, in his right, his bamboo staff, and the
knapsack hung over his shoulders. When he had gone thus for about a
mile he heard the melancholy "_Aosh_! _Aosh!_" of cattle-drivers in
the hills and the tinkling of bells. Turning a bluff he came face to
face with a small caravan of bullocks, returning from the interior,
laden with walnuts, dried apricots, and wool. Each bullock had a
bundle of merchandise slung on either side, and the frontlet of the
leading animal was adorned with strings of blue beads and shells. The
caravan-drivers walked, and as they urged their beasts along, repeated
at intervals their call, which to European ears would sound more like
a sigh of despair than a cry of encouragement. Beeroo stood by the
side of the road, and, stretching out his ash-covered hands, held out
the vessel for alms. Each man as he passed dropped a little into it
for luck, one a brown copper, another some dried fruit, a third a
handful of parched grain, and Beeroo received these offerings in a
grave silence as became his holy calling. He stayed thus until the
caravan was out of sight; then he collected the few coins and tossed
the rest of the contents of the vessel on to the roadside. He was
satisfied that his disguise was complete, and that he could face the
priests of the temple at Mohonagh without fear of discovery, for the
carriers were Bunjarees, members of a tribe allied to his own, whose
lynx-eyes would have discovered a Sansi in a moment unless his
disguise was perfect.

"_Thoba!_" laughed Beeroo to himself as he pressed on. "Had the
Bunjarees only known who I was, I had heard the whisper of their
sticks through the air, and my back might have been sore; but the
blessing of Mohonagh is upon me," he chuckled.

Beeroo rested that evening in a cave. He rose at midnight, however,
and travelling without a check was by morning ascending the winding
road that led to the shrine. He was not alone here, for there were a
number of pilgrims toiling up the ascent, halting now and again to
take breath, as they wearily climbed the narrow track set in between
the red and brown rocks, and overhung by wild apricot and holm-oak.
Among the pilgrims were those who, in expiation of their sins,
wriggled up the height on their faces like snakes, others who laid
themselves flat at every third step, others again who crawled up
painfully on their blistered hands and knees; there were women going
to thank the god for the blessing of children, bearded Dogras of the
hills, ash-covered and ochre-robed mendicants, and a fat _mahajun_, or
money-lender, who had won a lawsuit and ruined a village. All these
were hurrying towards the shrine, and their hands were full.

Under the arch of the gateway stood Prem Sagar, the high priest of
Mohonagh, and flung grain towards a countless number of pigeons that
fluttered and cooed around him. "They are the eyes and ears of the
temple," he said to himself as he gazed upon them; "they warn the
shrine of danger, they bring the news of the world beyond the hills,
they are surer than the telegraph of the Sahibs, for they tell no
secrets. Perchance," and he looked down on the specks slowly nearing
the gate, "amongst that crowd of fools is Beeroo the Sansi; if so the
god will welcome him, and there will be another miracle. Purun Chand!"
and he called out to a subordinate priest who approached him
reverently, "Purun Chand, awaken the god."

Purun Chand placed a conch-horn to his lips, and blew a long
deep-toned call. Its dismal notes were caught up in the hills and
echoed from valley to valley, until they died away, moaning in the
deeps of the forest. As the call rang out dolefully, the pilgrims
ascending the road fell on their knees, and with one voice cast up a
wailing cry, "Ai, ai, Mohonagh!" And Beeroo the Sansi, the man of no
caste, whose very presence so near the temple was an abomination,
shouted the loudest of all.


                          *   *   *   *   *


Half an hour later, Prem Sagar, the high priest, naked to the waist,
with his brahminical cord hanging over his left shoulder and a red and
white trident painted on his forehead, stood on the stone steps
leading up to the shrine, and watched with keen eyes the pilgrims as
they came within the temple walls. The devotees took no notice of him,
except some of the women who prostrated themselves, while he bowed his
head gravely in answer, but said nothing. His lips were muttering
prayers in a sing-song tone, but his eyes were tirelessly watching the
groups as they came up in files. At last Beeroo appeared, and on his
coming to the steps, slightly dragging his left foot, a quick light
shone in the high priest's eyes.

"Soh! It is the holy man!" his thoughts ran on. "Gobind Ram did well
to warn me of his limp. There too are the five marks of the leopard's
claws, running down the inside of the calf." As Beeroo approached the
priest, he imitated the action of a woman before him, and prostrated
himself. Prem Sagar pretended not to see him; but raised his voice to
a loud chant, and repeated the mystic words _Om, mane padme, om!_[2]
There was a time when these words caused the heavens to thunder as at
the sacred name of Jehovah; but now the limpid blue of the sky was
undisturbed, as the priest called out to the jewel in the lotus, the
symbol of the Universal God.


-----------------------------------

Footnote 2: "_Om_, the jewel in the lotus, _om!_" The _padma_, or
lotus, is the flower from which Brahma sprang.

-----------------------------------


"_Om, mane padme, om!_" repeated Beeroo, and passed into the shrine.
He found himself in a room about twenty feet square, the walls and
floor blackened by age and by the smoke from the cressets which burned
day and night in little niches in the walls. Overhead the vault of the
dome was in inky darkness, and in front of him, three-headed and
four-armed, painted a bright red, was the grinning idol of Mohonagh.
At the feet of the god were the offerings of the pilgrims, and on each
side of the idol stood an attendant priest holding a censer, which he
swung to and fro, and the fumes from which, heavy with the odour of
the wild jasmine and the champac, curled slowly up to the blackened
dome. But it was not on the idol, nor on the priests, nor on the
worshippers, that Beeroo's eyes were fixed. They were bent to the
right of the idol, where the trunk of the Shagul Tree rose from the
flooring of the temple like the body of a huge snake, and, escaping
outside through a cutting in the wall, spread out into branches and
leaves. In fact the temple was built around the tree, and even through
the gloom, Beeroo could see that the part of the tree within the
temple walls was covered with coins and gems. The coins, old and
blackened with smoke, looked like scales on the snake-like trunk of
the Shagul Tree: the gold and silver of the jewels were dimmed of
their brightness; but through the murky scented atmosphere the Sansi
saw the dusky burning red of the ruby, the green glow of the emerald,
the orange flame within the opal, and the countless lights in the
diamond; and all these came and went like stars twinkling through the
veil of a dark night. The Sansi almost gasped, such riches as these
were beyond his dreams; they truly meant _lakhs_ of rupees. A single
one of the gems would buy him a village and lands; if he could get the
whole! His brain almost reeled at the thought, and it was with an
effort that he steadied himself, and laying his offering at the feet
of the god, backed slowly out of the temple.

Between the outer walls and the shrine was a space about a hundred
feet square, shaded by a number of walnut trees. Hither the Sansi
betook himself, and placing his earthen bowl on the ground, sat down
behind it, staring stolidly before him as if trying to lose himself in
that abstraction by which the devotee attains to nirvana. Some of the
pilgrims piously dropped food into the vessel; but Beeroo took no heed
of this, his eyes were fixed on vacancy, and his mind was revolving
many things. So hour after hour passed, and Beeroo still sat
motionless as a stone. Prem Sagar approached him once and spoke;
but the holy man made no answer, judging it better to pretend to
be under a vow of silence, than to betray anything by converse
with the Brahmin. The high priest turned away smiling to himself.
"Blue-throated Krishna," he murmured, "but the Sansi plays his part
well! I had been deceived myself, had I not been warned by the--god,"
and he walked to the temple gates, and gazed down into the valley
beneath him.

At last the strain of the position he had assumed began to tell upon
Beeroo. Tough as he was, he had not had practice in those incredible
feats of patient endurance to which the regular _Bairajis_, or holy
men, have accustomed themselves. Beeroo would have followed the track
of a wounded stag like a jackal for three days; he would lifted a cow
at Jagadri at nightfall, and by morning been in the Mohun Pass; he
would have danced his tame bear at Umritsur at noontide, and when the
moon rose would have been resting at the Taksali Gate of Lahore; but
to sit without motion for hour after hour, to sit until his limbs
seemed paralyzed and his blood dead--this was unbearable. At all
hazards this must be ended; and he suddenly rose, and began to move up
and down, gesticulating wildly. The people who looked on thought he
was mad, and therefore more holy than ever. They little knew of the
method in the Sansi's madness, and that he was making the frozen blood
circulate once again in his cramped limbs. When he had done this he
came back, ate a little, and coiling himself up in the dust went to
sleep, his sack under his head.

By sunset most of the pilgrims had departed from the shrine, leaving
only those who, having far to go, determined to camp within the
inclosure of the temple walls for the night. They had brought
provisions with them, and soon fires were sputtering merrily, and
little groups sat around them, enjoying themselves in the subdued
fashion of Indians. The holy man was not forgotten; his vessel was
soon full of smoking hot cakes of Indian corn, and one kinder than the
others placed a brass _lota_ of milk beside him. The holy one proved
himself to be very willing to accept these gifts, and doubtless
refreshed by his sleep, ate and drank with a very mundane appetite.
While thus engaged, a little child came, and placing an offering of a
string of flowers at his feet, shyly ran back to his parents. Prem
Sagar saw this, and turning to the same priest who had aroused the
idol in the morning, said: "Purun Chand, while standing at the temple
gates this morning, mine eyes became dim, and there was a roaring in
mine ears. Then I heard the voice of the idol of Mohonagh, and he said
unto me: 'Five score years have passed to-day since the days of Sham
Chand the king, since the days of the high priest Prem Chand, since I,
Mohonagh, have spoken. Now to-night is the night of the new moon, and
I, Mohonagh, will work a sign.' Then the darkness cleared away, and
all was as before. Therefore I say to thee, Purun Chand, let not the
idol be watched tonight: let the temple gates be kept open that
Mohonagh may enter; and to-morrow at the dawning we shall behold his
sign."

Purun Chand bowed his obedience to the high priest; and then the
darkness came, and with it the stars, and the thin scimitar of the
young moon set slantwise in the sky. Beeroo was in no hurry; he had
plenty of time to think out his plan of action, and had resolved to
make his attempt in the small hours of the morning, for choice, in
that still time between night and day, when all would be asleep, when
even if it became necessary to remove an obstacle from his path, on
one would hear the stroke of the knife or the groan of the victim. A
little after midnight, then, Beeroo arose to his feet, and looked
cautiously about him. Everything was very still; the camp-fires burned
low and there was no sound except the rustle of the leaves overhead.
The tree beneath which he rested was very near to the temple gates,
and it struck him that they were open. He crept softly towards them,
and found it was as he thought. "The blessing of Mohonagh is on me,"
he laughed lowly to himself as he came back. He thrust his hand into
his sack, and pulled out a light but strong claw-hammer, and a knife
with a pointed blade keen as a razor. As he brought them forth they
clicked against each other, and in the dead stillness the sharp,
metallic sound seemed loud enough to be heard all over the inclosure.
Something also disturbed the pigeons on the temple, and there was an
uneasy fluttering of wings. The Sansi drew in his breath with a
hissing sound. "This will cause a two hours' delay," he said to
himself. "I will risk nothing if I can help it." Then he sat him down
again and waited.

At last! He rose once more softly, and crept with long cat-like steps
towards the entrance of the shrine. The cressets burning within cast a
faint pennon of light out of the pointed archway of the entrance, and
as they wavered in the night wind, this banner of fire shook and
trembled with an uncertain motion. Beeroo halted in the shadow. He was
about to step forward again when he was startled by a strange, shrill
chuckling cry that made his very flesh creep. He looked around him in
fear, and the elvish laugh came again from amidst the leaves of the
walnut trees. The man heaved a sigh of relief; "Pah!" he exclaimed in
disgust at himself, "it is but a screech-owl." He had to wait a
little, however, to steady himself; and then he boldly pressed forward
and through the door of the shrine. There was not a soul within. The
glimmering lights cast uncertain shadows around them, and the three
heads of the idol faced the Sansi in a stony silence. There was but
one eye in the centre of each forehead; but all three of these eyes
seemed to lighten, and the thick lips on the three faces to widen in a
grin of mockery at the thief. Like all natives of India, Beeroo was
superstitious, and a fear he could hardly control fell on him. What
if, after all, the stories of the idol's power were true? Aladin had
not lied about the Shagul Tree; why should he lie about the power of
the idol? Still Mohonagh was not the god of the Sansis. He would
invoke his own gods, deities of forest and flood, against this
three-headed monster. Then the Shagul Tree was there. He could all but
touch it; he caught the flash of the winking gems, and the instincts
of the robber, fighting with his fears, brought back his courage.

"Aho, Mohonagh! Thy blessing is on me, the Sansi." He said this loudly
in bravado, and was almost frightened again at the echoes of his own
voice in the vault of the dome. He had spoken with the same feeling in
his heart that makes a timid traveller whistle when passing a place he
dreads. He had spoken to keep his heart up, and the very sound of his
own voice terrified him. At last the echoes died away and there was
silence in the shrine. Large beads of sweat stood on the man's
forehead. Almost did he feel it in his heart to flee at once; but to
leave that priceless treasure now! It could not be. In two strides he
was beside the tree. A wrench of the claw-hammer and a jewelled
bracelet was in his hand; another wrench and he had secured another
blazing trophy.

"Beeroo!"

The man looked up in guilty amazement. To his horror he saw that the
three heads of the idol, which were facing the door when he entered,
had moved round, and were now facing him. The hammer fell from his
hand with a crash, and he stood shivering, a grey figure with staring
eyes and open gasping mouth.

"_Ai_, Mohonagh!" he said in a choking voice.

"The blessing of Mohonagh is on thee;" and something that seemed all
on fire rose from behind the idol, and laid its hand on Beeroo's face.
With a shriek of agony the Sansi rolled on the floor, and twisted and
curled there like a snake with a broken back.

When, roused by his cries, the people and the priests awoke and
hurried to the temple, they shrank back in terror; and none dared
enter, not even the priests, for from the mouths of the idol three
long tongues of flame played, paling the glow of the cressets and
throwing its light on the blind and writhing wretch at its feet.

Suddenly a quiet voice spoke at the temple-door, and Prem Sagar the
high-priest appeared. "O pilgrims," he said, "be not afraid! Mohonagh
has but protected his treasure, and given us a sign. Said I not he
would do this, Purun Chand? See," he added, as he stepped into the
temple, and lifted up the gems from the floor, "this man would have
robbed a god!" And the people, together with the priests, fell on
their knees and touched the earth with their foreheads, crying "_Ai_,
_ai_, Mohonagh!"

Prem Sagar pointed to Beeroo. "Bear him outside the temple-gates and
leave him there," he said; "he is blind and cannot see."

Two or three men volunteered to do this, and they bore him out as
Prem Sagar had ordered, and cast him on the roadside without the
temple-gates; and he, to whom day and night were to be henceforth ever
the same, lay there moaning in the dust.

Late that morning certain pilgrims returning to their houses found him
there, and, being pitiful, offered to guide him back. It is said that
the first question he asked was, "When will it be daylight?" And a
Dogra of the hills answered bluntly, "Fool, thou art blind"; whereat
the Sansi lapsed into a stony silence, and was led away like a child.


In the tribe of the Sansis, who wander from Tajawala to Jagadhri where
the brass-workers are, and from Jagadhri to Karnal, is a blind madman
who bears on his scarred face the impress of a hand. It is said that
he can cure all diseases at will, for he is the only man living who
has stood face to face with a god.





                         THE FOOT OF GAUTAMA


The _Gregory Gasper_, or, as the Lascars insisted on calling her, the
_Gir Giri Gaspa_, bound from Calcutta to Rangoon and the Straits, had
injured her machinery, and was now going, as it were, on one leg, and
going very lamely, across the Bay of Bengal. We had got into a dead
calm. The sea and the sky fused into each other in the horizon, and
the water around us was as molten glass, parting sluggishly before the
bows of the ship, instead of dancing back in a creamy foam.

"By Jove!" said Sladen, as he leaned over the side and watched the
lazy brown swell lounge backward from our course, "this is a dirty bit
of water: that wave should have had a white head to it. I believe
we've got into a sea of flat beer."

"We've got to go to Rangoon for hospital, and this is the outwater of
the Irawadi," said a passenger from his seat. "We can't be more than
sixty miles from the coast, and an Irawadi flood shoots its slime out
quite as far as that."

"I prefer to think it's flat ale. It's too hot to go into physical
geography, Burgess"; and Sladen, flinging the half-burnt stump of his
cheroot overboard, joined us who sat in torpid silence. The heat was
intense. We had tried every known way to kill time, and failed.

The small excitement of the morning, caused by a shoal of turtles
drifting by solemnly, had passed. They looked like so many inverted
earthen pots in the water, and we had wasted about fifty of the ship's
snider cartridges on them, until, finally, they floated out of range
and sight, unhurt and safe. Then an Indian Marine vessel passed us in
the offing, and there was a hot discussion between Sladen and myself
whether it was the _Warren Hastings_ or the _Lord Clive_. We appealed
to the captain, who, being a member of the Royal Naval Reserve, looked
with profound scorn on the Indian Marine. He scarcely deigned to
glance at the ship as he grunted out:

"Oh, it's one of those damned cockroach navy boats: it's that old tub
the _Lord Clive_," and he walked off to the bridge. Ten minutes
afterwards we lost the grey sides of the old tub in the grey of the
sea, and a dark line of smoke running from east to west was the only
sign of the _Lord Clive_, as she steamed through the dead calm at
fourteen knots an hour. Then we tried nap, we adventured at loo, and
we bluffed at poker. There was no balm in them, and Sladen twice held
a flush sequence of hearts. Therefore we sat moody and silent, some of
us too sleepy even to smoke.

It was at this moment that the skipper rejoined us, and behind him
came his stout Madrassee butler, with a tray full of long glasses, in
which the ice chinked pleasantly.

"Drink, boys!" he said, settling himself in the special chair reserved
for him. "It's the chief's watch, and I've brought you a particular
brew, as you seem dull and lonesome, so to speak."

It was a particular brew, and we sucked at it lovingly through the
long amber straws.

"Ha!" said the skipper, "I thought that would stiffen your backbones.
Phew! it is hot!" and he mopped his face with a huge handkerchief.

Sladen burst out: "We've got absolutely on the hump. Somebody do
something to kill time. Can't some of you fellows tell a story? Any
lie will do! Come, Captain!"

"No, no!" said the skipper. "I'm the senior officer here, and speak
last. Here's Mr. Burgess: he's been in all sorts of uncanny places,
and should be able to tell us something. I put the call on him--so
heave away."

Burgess, the man who had spoken about the outwater of the Irawadi,
leaned back for a moment in his chair, with half-closed eyes. He was a
short, squarely built man, very sunburnt, with mouth and chin hidden
by the growth of a large moustache and beard. There was nothing
particular in his appearance; yet in following his calling--that of an
orchid-hunter--he had been to strange places and seen strange things.
Sladen, who knew him well, hinted darkly that he had traversed unknown
tracts of country, had hobnobbed with cannibals, and held his life in
his hands for the past thirty years.

"You've hit on the very man, Captain," said Sladen. "Now, Burgess,
tell us how you found the snake-orchid, and sold it to a duchess for a
thousand pounds. You promised to tell me the story one day, you
remember?"

"That's too long. I'll tell you a story, however"; and Burgess lifted
up his drink, took a pull at it, and, picking up the straw that leaned
back in a helpless manner against the edge of the glass, began
twisting it round his fingers as he spoke.

"All this happened many years ago----"

"When flowers and birds could talk," interrupted the Boy; and Burgess,
turning on him, said slowly: "Flowers and birds can talk _now_. When
you are older you will understand."

The Boy looked down a little abashed, and Burgess continued: "I am
afraid to say how many years ago I first went to Burma. I was as poor
as a rat, and things had panned out badly for me. Rangoon then was not
the Rangoon of to-day, and the old king Min-Doon Min, who succeeded to
the throne after the war, was still almost all-powerful. He was not a
bad fellow, and I once did a roaring trade with him at Mandalay:
exchanged fifty packets of coloured candles for fifty pigeon's-blood
rubies. They had a big illumination at the palace that night, and I
only narrowly escaped being made a member of the cabinet. I, however,
got the right of travelling through his majesty's dominions, wherever
and whenever I pleased; but the chief queen made it a condition that I
should supply no more coloured candles. She preferred the rubies; and
I fancy old Min-Doon Min must have had a bad time of it, for the queen
was as remarkable for her thrift as for her tongue. She was as close
as that"--Burgess held up a square brown fist before us, and, as he
did so, I noticed the white line of a scar running across it, below
the knuckles, from thumb to little finger. He caught my eye resting on
it, and laughingly said: "It's a seal of the kind friends I have in
Kinnabalu. But to resume, as the story-books say. All this about
Min-Doon is a 'divarsion,' and I'll go back to the point when I found
myself first at Rangoon, with all my wardrobe on my back, and a
two-dollar bill in my pocket. After drifting about for some time, I
got employment in a rice-shipping firm, and set myself to work to
learn the language. In about a year I could speak it well, and, having
got promotion in the firm, felt myself on the high road to fortune. It
was hard work: the boss knew the value of every penny he spent, and
took every ounce he could out of his men."

"Bosses are cut out of the same pattern even now," murmured the Boy.
"The breed don't seem to improve."

Burgess took no notice of the interruption, but went on: "I was
finally placed in charge of some work at Syriam; and a little
misfortune happened--my over-man died. It was rather a job to get
another. Men were not easily picked up in those days. But at last I
unearthed one, or rather he unearthed himself. He hailed from the
States, and described himself as a Kentucky man--the real 'half-horse,
half-alligator' breed. I asked no questions, but set him to work, and
reported to the boss, who said 'All right.' The new man seemed to be a
gem: he turned up regularly, stayed till all hours, and never spared
himself. He was a great lanky fellow, with dark hair, and eyes so
palely grey that they seemed almost white. They gave him an odd
appearance; but, as good looks were not a qualification in our
business, it did not matter much what he was like. He had been a
miner, and had also been to sea, and knew how to obey an order at the
double. One day he suddenly looked up from his table--we sat in the
same room--and asked if I had heard of treasure ever being buried in
or near old pagodas.

"'Every one hears such stories,' I answered; 'but why do you ask?'

"'Wal,' he went on, in his slow drawl, 'I've bin readin' ez haow a
Portugee called Brito, or some sich name, did a little bit of piracy
in these hyar parts, until his games were stopped by the local Jedge
Lynch. They ran a stick through him, as the Burmese do now to a dried
duck.'

"'What's that got to do with buried treasure?'

"'You air smart! This Brito, before his luck petered out, had a
pow'ful soothin' time of it with the junks an' pagodas, and poongyies,
as they call their clergy. Guess he didn't lay round hyar for nuthin',
an' if all I've heard be true, vermilion isn't the name for the paint
he put on the squint-eyes.

"'But----'

"He put up his hand. 'So long. I'm thinkin' that, ef I'd a smart
pard--one who saveyed their lingo--we might strike a lead of luck.'

"I was always a bit of a roving character, and fond of a little
adventure, so that the conversation interested me; still, however, I
objected, more with a desire to see how much Stevens, as he called
himself, knew than anything else.

"'See thar,' he said, pulling out a map from his drawer and unrolling
it on the table. 'See thar! This is where Brito and his crowd were,'
and he laid a long forefinger on the mouths of the Irawadi. 'When they
bested him, the Burmese got little or nuthin' back. I want a pard--one
who knows the lingo, an' is a white man. You set me up when I'd
struck bed rock; an' I says to myself, Wal, this 'ere _is_ a white
man. Ef ever Hake Stevens gets a pile, it's to be halves. The pile's
thar--will you jine?'

"He stood up, and put his hand on my shoulder. It really wasn't good
enough. Stevens had simply got hold of a very ordinary legend after
all, and I laughed back, 'You'll make more out of a rice-boom,
Stevens, some day, than ever you will out of Brito's treasure.' He
rolled up the map and put it back into his drawer.

"'I've done the squar' thing by you, pard,' he said. 'No one can deny
ez I haven't done the squar' by you.'

"'Of course,' I answered, and turned to my duties. From that time,
however, Stevens seemed to be able to think of nothing but his
imaginary treasure. Some days afterwards he did not come to work, and
the following day we got an ill-spelt letter, resigning his post, and
asking that the money due to him should be sent to a certain address.
We paid up, and got a Chinaman in his place."

"In a short time the Chinaman will be doing everybody's work in
Burma," said Sladen. "Hand over the baccy, please, Captain."

The skipper flung Sladen a black rubber tobacco pouch, and Burgess, in
this interlude, finished his glass.

"I clean forgot all about Stevens, when one evening, as I was sitting
in my rooms over a pipe, my servant told me some one wished to see me.
I told the man to admit him, and Stevens came in. He seemed fairly
well off; but was, if possible, a trifle thinner than when I last saw
him. He shook me by the hand, disjointed himself like a fishing-rod,
and sank into a chair.

"'Wal, pard, will you jine?'

"'Still at the old game, Stevens? No, I don't think I'll join on a
fool's search like that.'

"'Fool's search, you call it. Very wal, let it be naow; but I want you
to come with me this evening to an entertainment. It's a sort of
swarrey; but I guess ez we'll be the only guests.'

"'Have a whiskey first?'

"'I guess ez haow a wet won't hurt,' and he poured himself out a glass
from the bottle--we weren't up to decanters in Burma then.

"I thought I might as well go, and, having made up my mind, we were
walking down the street in the next ten minutes. Rangoon was not laid
out in squares as it is now, with each street numbered, so that losing
your way is an impossibility. Well as I knew the place, I found that
Hake Stevens was aware of short cuts and by-lanes which I had never
seen before. We entered the Chinese quarter. It was a feast-day for
John, and the street was alight with paper lanterns: dragons,
serpents, globes, and tortoises swung to and fro in all manner of
colours. Here a green dragon went openmouthed at a yellow serpent,
there an amber tortoise swung in a circle of crimson-and-blue globes.
We passed a joss house, where there was an illuminated inscription to
the effect that enlightenment finds its way even amongst the outer
barbarians, and, turning to the left, much where Twenty-Seven Street
is now--a fire wiped out all that part of Rangoon years ago--went up a
gully, and finally stopped before a small shop. Sitting in a cane
chair in the doorway was a short man, so enormously stout that he was
almost globular. 'Is he in?' asked Stevens, in English; and the man,
with his teeth closed on the stem of the opium pipe he smoked,
answered 'Yess,' or rather hissed the words between his lips. We
passed by him with some little difficulty, for he made no effort to
move, and, ascending a rickety staircase, entered a small room, dimly
lighted by a cheap kerosene lamp. In one corner of the room an old man
was seated. He rose as we entered, and saluted us.

"'This is the host,' and Stevens waved his hand in introduction. 'But
he knows only about six words of English, and I know nothing of his
derned lip, so you see my new pard an' I cayn't very well exchange
confidences.'

"I confess to a feeling of utter disappointment when I saw what we had
come to; but there was no use in saying anything. 'Who is he? How did
you get to know him?' I asked Stevens. He closed an eyebrow over one
of his white-grey eyes with a portentous wink.

"'That, pard, is one of the secrets of the past. We hev the future
before us.'

"I never could quite make Stevens out. He spoke the most obtrusive
Yankee; yet with turns of expression which at times induced me to
think he was playing a part.

"'Very well,' I laughed,' I don't want to look back; but may I ask
what is the entertainment this gentleman has provided for us?'

"'Wal,' replied Stevens, 'he's just one of their medicine-men: goes
off to sleep, and then tells you all about everything. I'm goin' to
lay round for him to tell us where Brito's pile is. Spirit-rappin'
does strange things in my country, an' I don't see ez how this old
cuss moutn't be of help.'

"The old tack again!--I resigned myself to fate. There is no use in
going into preliminaries. Stevens stated what he wanted, and I
explained fully and clearly what was required. We then paid our fee,
which the old gentleman wrapped up for security in a corner of the
saffron sash he wore round his head, and told us to sit down before
him. Then he stripped himself to the waist--there wasn't much to
remove--and spread a square of white cloth on the floor; on this he
placed a mirror, brought the light close to the mirror, and then
settled himself cross-legged before his arrangement of mirror and
light.

"'Listen!' he said in Burmese. 'I have given my word, and will show
you what you want; but you must not speak, and you must follow my
directions implicitly.'

"I translated to Stevens, who willingly agreed. "'Now shut your eyes.'

"We did so, and I felt his hands passing over my face. Then something
cold touched my forehead, leaving a sensation much like that caused by
a menthol crystal. A moment later a subtle odour filled the room--an
odour indescribably sweet and heavy, the effect of which on me was to
make me feel giddy.

"'Open your eyes!'

"I almost started, for the words were spoken in the purest English. We
obeyed, and found the room full of a pale blue vapour. The lamp had
gone out; but the mirror was instinct with light, and threw a halo
around it, showing the dim outline of the sorcerer crouched low down
with his face between his hands. "'Look!'

"The voice seemed to come from all parts of the room at once, and
Stevens' hand clutched on to my shoulder, the fingers gripping in like
a vice. We bent over the glass, and saw reflected in it, not our own
faces, but a wide creek, overhung by forest on each side, and a row of
six colossal images of Buddha, or Gautamas as they are called, lining
one of the banks. Whilst we looked on this silent scene, a boat
with a couple of native oarsmen came round the elbow of the creek. In
the stern sat a man in an old-fashioned dress, with a cuirass on;
and as the boat grounded lightly near the figure of the largest
Gautama, he leaped actively to land, holding up from the ground a
long, basket-hilted rapier. The two men followed, bearing with them an
iron-bound chest, and laid it at the feet of the biggest Gautama; then
returning to the boat, they brought picks therefrom, and began to dig,
the man with the rapier standing over them, resting on the hilt of his
sword. They dug away under the foot of the idol, and finally concluded
they had gone far enough. The chief examined their work, and some
words passed. We saw the lips moving, but heard nothing. The box was
buried carefully, and the stones and earth put back, so as to remove
all traces of the hiding-place of the treasure. Some further
directions were given, and one of the two natives stooped as if to
throw some brushwood over the spot. The next moment the rapier passed
through his body. He twisted himself double, and rolled over dead. The
other turned to flee, but there was a flash, a small curl of blue and
grey smoke, and he fell forward on his face into the water and sank.
The cavalier, still holding the pistol in his hand, went up to the
first man. There was no doubt he was dead; so the Don put back his
pistol, wiped his sword carefully with a handful of grass, and
returned it to its scabbard; then he dragged the body to the creek and
flung it in. After that he gave a last look at the foot of the
Gautama, and, jumping into the boat, began to paddle himself away.

"'Dead men tell no tales.' The words seemed to burst from Stevens.
Instantly there was a blinding flash, and when we recovered ourselves
the room was as before. The cloth and mirror had gone, and the old
sorcerer was seated on his stool in the corner of the room, the lamp
burning dimly beside him.

"'You spoke,' he said. 'I can do no more.'

"I looked at Stevens reproachfully, and he understood. His face was
very pale, and his lips blue with excitement. After a little he
recovered himself, and said, with a shake of eagerness in his voice:

"'Cayn't this old cuss start fresh, an' give us another run?'

"'I can do nothing,' replied the man to my inquiry. 'You must go now.'

"We turned to depart, and when we got into the street Stevens said to
me: 'I'll see you home. I'm afraid I busted the show.'

"'I'm afraid you have; but it's no use crying over spilt milk.'

"Stevens made no answer, and we walked back to my rooms without saying
a word. At the door he left me abruptly, refusing all offers to come
in. Once in my rooms, I tried to think out the matter, but gave it up
and went to bed. Sleep wouldn't come, so I lay awake the whole night,
picturing to myself over and over again the grim scene I had seen
enacted in the mirror. Towards morning I dropped into a troubled
sleep, and awoke rather late. I got out of bed thinking that the
events of the past night were, after all, nothing more than a dream;
but it all came back to me. When I went down to breakfast I found
Stevens waiting for me, and he pressed me earnestly to join him in a
search for the place we had seen in the looking-glass. I was in an
irritable mood. 'Great Scott!' I said, 'can't you see that all this is
only a conjurer's trick? How many thousand Gautamas are there in
Burma? Are you going to dig them all up?'

"'Some men don't know their luck, pard,' he said, as he left me; and,
although I thought of him sometimes, I never heard anything more of
him for a long time.

"A run of bad luck came now, and the boss suspended payment--went
bung, in fact--and I was thrown on my beam ends. I had something in
the stocking, though; and it was about this time that my thoughts kept
turning continually towards the orchid trade. It first struck me in
this way: A friend of mine had written from home, pointing out that a
demand had arisen for orchids; and the small supply I sent was sold on
such favourable terms that I was seriously considering a larger
venture. I thought the matter over, and one evening after dinner
determined to give it a final consideration. So I lit my pipe, and
strolled out towards the jetties--a favourite walk of mine. It was
bright moonlight; and I walked up and down the planking, more and more
resolved at every turn I took to decide upon the orchid business.

"At one end of the jetty there was a crane that stretched out its arm
in a how-de-do sort of manner to the river below it. I walked up to it
with idle curiosity, and when I came close, saw the figure of a
European, apparently fast asleep, near the carriage of the crane. A
common 'drunk' or a loafer, I thought to myself--when the figure rose
to a sitting posture, and, as the moonlight shone on its face, I could
not make a mistake.

"'Stevens!' I said.

"'Wal, pard?' and Hake Stevens, without another word, rose up and
stood before me.

"I saw at a glance that he was in rags, and that about the third of
one stockingless foot was protruding in an easy manner from his
boot; the other boot seemed more or less wearable. Stevens had a habit
of walking with a lurch to his left--heeling over to port, as it
were--which accounted for the fact I observed.

"'Why,' I said, putting my hand on his shoulder, 'how has it come to
this? Why didn't you come to me?'

"'Have you got a smoke?' he asked.

"For answer I handed him my baccy pouch, and he loaded an old pipe.

"'Light-o!'

"I struck a vesta, and handed it to him. By the flare of it I could
see him very white and starved.

"'Now,' I added, 'you come straight home with me.'

"'Guess ez haow I was making tracks thar, when I broke down, an' had
to heave to. I hev found it this time. See hyar.'

"'First come home with me, and then you can tell me all about it. I
won't hear a word till you've had something to eat and a rest.'

"It was only a few minutes' walk to my rooms; but I had to half carry
Stevens there. Those were the days when cabs were unknown, remember.
As soon as we arrived, I told my boy to raise supper; and in the
meantime Stevens had a stiff whiskey, a bath, and changed into some of
my things. He looked a figure of fun as he came out, with about a yard
of lean leg and leaner arm sticking out of the things I'd given him.
But, Lord! you should have seen him wolf the cold meat and pickles!
When he'd done, I was for just marching him straight to bed. But, no:
he was determined to tell me his story; so I let him run his course.

"'Pard,' he said, 'when I busted the caboodle that night, an' left
you, I said to myself: "Hake Stevens, you chowder-headed clam, you
jest make this level; you've done an all-fired foolish thing, an' now
you've got ter eat yer leek." The next mornin' I gave you another try,
but you wouldn't rise to it; so I went off an' took a passage to
Henzada. It was all in the low countries that Brito was, an' I
determined to work the thing in square--work every inch of it, ef it
took me a hundred years, until I found thet creek with the images. I
got to Henzada in a rice boat; then I pulled out my map, marked my
square, an' set to work. I bought a paddle canoe, an' blazed every
creek I went up. I made up my mind ez I should work down'erds from
Henzada, ez thet was the furthest point old Brito struck. I calc'lated
thet ef he was hard pressed, an' the Burmee squint-eyes were gettin'
the jamb on him, he would lay fur to hide his greenbacks ez far from
his usual bars ez possible. Wal, I worked those creeks up an' down,
night an' day, gettin' what I could out of the villagers on payment,
an' when the dollars ran out, got it without payment. Snakes! How the
squitters fed on me! An' I was a'most so starved thet, ef I could on'y
hev managed it, I'd hev fed on them like a fish, an' got some of
myself back agen. Wal, it woke snakes when they found I swooped down
on their cokynut plantations, and one thing and another; but a
freeborn American ain't goin' fur to starve when these hyar yeller
Burmans gits their bellies full. The local sheriff and his posse
turned out, an' thar was a vigilance committee behind every tree.
Shootin' was not in my line, unless forced to; so I skedaddled, an'
they after me. It was a tight race, an' I was so weak I felt I could
hardly hold out; so I thought I'd better take to land. I shot the
canoe under some branches, an', to my surprise, found they overhung
an' concealed a small passage, hardly wide enough for two canoes
abreast. Up this I went: it was easier goin' than walkin' through the
thorns. After about four hours of shovin' through slime, it widened
out; an' then, turnin' a great clump of bamboos, I swung round to my
right--an' what do you think I saw?'

"He stretched his hand out to me, and the grey of his eyes seemed
absolutely to whiten. "'Ez I live, I saw the six big images all in a
row, each one bigger than the other; an' they war smilin' across the
creek, as they smiled when Brito buried his treasure thar, an' God
knows how many years before. I ran the boat ashore, jumped off, an'
patted the big idol's knee--couldn't reach further up; an' then I came
back to find you. The gold lies thar, pard, an' we are made men: it's
thar, I say. Come back with me; share an' share alike--hands on it.'

"His voice cracked as he brought his story to this abrupt close; and I
said nothing, but shook his outstretched hand.

"'When can we start?' he asked.

"'You must pull yourself together a bit, Stevens, before we do
anything of the kind.'

"Then I told him briefly how I was a free man, and able to go where I
listed; and that, as I could combine my first essay in orchid-hunting
with the search for Brito's treasure, I didn't care how soon I went.
But it could not be until Stevens was better able to travel, as the
rains were coming on, and further exposure might mean death to him.

"'And now,' I said, 'you'd better turn in and have a snooze. I'm a bit
sleepy myself.'

"With that he got up and shambled off to bed. The next morning he was
in a high fever, and it was some time before he was right again. At
length he said he was once more fit 'to fight his weight in wild
cats.' He wasn't by any means that: he was still weak, and not able to
face any great hardship; but enforced idleness was sending the man
mad, and I thought we'd better make a start. I did not mean to go in
for any particular roughing it. It was only subsequently that I
learned what sort of music an orchid-hunter has to face."

Burgess stopped for a moment, and pointed his finger at the Boy, who
lay flat on his back, sound asleep, with his lower jaw open.

"If you're feeling like that, I'll reel up."

"Go ahead," said the skipper: "if you've done nothing else you've
quieted that young limb for the present, and we owe you a vote of
thanks for that."

"Go on, Burgess," said Sladen: "you've burnt your ships now, and can't
go back."

The man laughed--a pleasant, low laugh, that was good to hear.

"Very well--I'll go on. I totted up my savings, and found I could
fairly risk the venture. We made arrangements to go to Henzada first,
and the passage was done in a big rice boat: there was no flotilla
company in those days. We simply crawled to our destination, and I was
pretty sick of the journey. It nearly drove Stevens mad, however; he
fretted and fumed until I almost thought he'd be ill again. Whenever
we could stop, we did; and I collected as many orchids as I could.
Heavens! the rubbish I picked up in those days! Stevens did nothing
but swear at the _serang_ and pore over the notes in his pocket-book.
He got into a way of repeating the notes in his book aloud. 'Third
turnin' to the right, first to the left, three big jack trees, and
then the passage.' He was learning his notes by heart, he said, in
case anything happened.

"When we reached Henzada, a difficulty arose which we should have
foreseen. Stevens was recognised, and his late visit only too well
remembered. The result was trouble; but the Myook--there was only a
Myook there in those days--was open to argument, backed up with palm
oil, and Stevens was let off with a fine. Of course I paid, and was
correspondingly sorry for myself; but we'd gone too far now to recede.
We bought a boat--or rather I did--hired a couple of men to help, and
started. Stevens had selected some good picks at Rangoon, and these
formed a not unimportant item of our outfit. In three days we reached
a big creek.

"'It was hyar that I cut from those Injuns on the war-path,' said
Stevens, 'and we cayn't be mor'n a mile from the gully--we should be
there by nightfall.'

"It was noonday, almost as hot as it is now, and I was snoozing
comfortably, when I heard Stevens shout:

"'Hyar we are, pard--wake up!'

"The boat swung lightly round, and shot under the overhanging branches
of a large jack tree as he spoke, and I had to stoop very low to save
my head. Stevens was trembling with excitement.

"'In thar,' he called out--'tell them to steer in thar, an' then right
ahead.' He pointed to a small opening, about three feet wide, up which
a long straight cut of water extended. We got the boat in with some
little trouble, and then slipped along easily. The cut was as straight
as a canal, overhung on each side with a heavy undergrowth. As we went
deeper into the forest this undergrowth became less, and finally
almost ceased. Every yard of our advance took us amongst trees which
grew more gigantic as we went on. Some of the trees were splendid,
going up fifty or sixty feet before throwing out a single branch; and
the bamboos--I never saw such bamboos. As we continued our course it
became darker and darker, until we entered the blackest bit of forest
I ever saw. We could hear the drip of the dew from leaf to leaf. The
few rays of sunlight that straggled in fell in level bars on the green
of the leaves, shadowing the dim outlines of the long colonnades of
tree trunks, and occasionally lighting up the splendour of some rare
orchid in full bloom. A hundred times I wanted to stop and collect
specimens, but Stevens would not hear of it.

"'No, no, old pard! let's get on. We'll come back hyar in our steam
yacht, an' you can then root away for etarnity. We're on the right
trail, an' in ten hours--my God! I cayn't think ez how your mind can
turn to roots now.'

"I was a little surprised myself; but the love of these flowers was in
me, and not all the gold in Asia could stop that. In this way we
travelled for about four hours; and then towards evening a broad band
of daylight spread suddenly before us, and, almost before I was aware
of it, we were out of the long, snake-like cutting, and, turning a
magnificent clump of bamboos, came upon a wide stretch of water.

"'There they air!' said Stevens.

"There they were--six huge statues--standing in a row on the edge of
the inland lake, each colossal image larger than the other, all with
their faces set towards the west. It was almost sunset, and the sky
was aflame with colour, which was reflected back by the water, over
which the Gautamas looked in serene peace. There was not a sound
except the soft murmuring of the breeze amongst the tree tops. As I
live, it was the place we had seen in the mirror, and for a moment
that tragedy of the past came before me in all its clearness--and I
was in dreamland.

"'Wal, pard! Struck ile at last.'

"The sound of Stevens' voice came to me as from a far distance. In the
sunlit haze before me I saw the Don paddling his boat away, his long
black moustaches lifted with the snarling laugh he had laughed, when
he hid his treasure so that no man could tell.

"The boat grounded softly, and Stevens shook me by the shoulder.

"'Wake up, old hoss!--wake up!'

"I pulled myself together and looked at my companion. His face was
full of a strange excitement, and as for myself, I felt as if I could
hardly speak. As a matter of fact, we wasted no time in words; but
took off our coats and set to work. Our small crew lent a willing
hand. It was under the left foot of the biggest Buddha we dug, and in
about half an hour made a hole big enough for a man to stand in over
his waist.

"'Guess he must have burrowed down far,' said Stevens, 'or we've
missed the spot.' Even as he spoke his pick struck with a sharp clang
against something.

"'Iron against iron,' yelled Stevens, as he swung his pick round like
a madman. He worked so furiously that it was impossible to get near
him; but finally he stopped, and said very calmly:

"'Thar's the pile, pard.'

"We shook hands, and then, with the aid of the men, lifted out the
box. It was exceedingly heavy. When we got it out there was some
difficulty in opening it, but a revolver cartridge and the pick solved
the matter. As the lid went up, we saw before our eyes a pile of gold,
jewellery and precious stones. Hake Stevens ran his fingers through
them lovingly, and then lay down on the ground, laughing and crying.
Then he got up again, and plunged his arms up to the elbows into the
winking mass--and his eyes were as the eyes of a madman. I put my hand
into the box and pulled out a fistful of gems. Stevens grasped me by
the wrist, and then loosed his hold at once.

"'Oh God! oh God!'

"'Why, what is the matter, Stevens? Look at these beauties!' and I
held out my hand to him. He looked back at me in a strange sort of
way, and said, in a husky voice:

"'Keep that lot, pard. Don't let them be mixed with the others. See! I
will take what I can hold, too, and we will divide the rest.' He put
his hand amongst the jewels and drew it back with a shudder. 'They're
hot as hell,' he said.

"I thought the best thing to do was not to notice his strange manner.

"'Keep them to cool,' I said, flinging what I had with me into the
box, and shutting the lid, 'and come and have some dinner. I'm
famished.'

"'Do you think these fellows are all right?' Stevens said, apparently
trying to pull himself together, as he indicated the crew with a
glance.

"'We ought to be a match for twice the number; but we'll keep a look
out.'

"We went to dinner in the boat, carrying our box with us. Our crew lit
a fire near one of the idols, and cooked their food, whilst we ate our
very simple meal. The sun had gone down, and the moon was fighting
with a heavy mass of clouds that had sprung up apparently from
nowhere, and were gathering in mountainous piles overhead. The low
rumbling of distant thunder came to our ears.

"'Looks like rain. Jehoshaphat!--it is rain.'

"A distant moaning sound that gradually increased in volume was
audible, the tree tops bent and swayed, the placid surface of the
lagoon was beaten into a white foam, and the storm came. We heard a
yell from the boatmen on the bank. The next moment we were torn from
our moorings, and went swinging down the creek in pitchy darkness.
Overhead and around all hell was loose. The paddles were swept away,
and we spun round in a roaring wind, in a din of the elements, and a
darkness like unto what was before God said, 'Let there be light.' I
shouted to Stevens, but could not hear my own voice. Suddenly there
came a deafening crash, and a chain of fire hung round the heavens. I
saw Stevens crouching in the boat, with his face resting on the box,
and his arms clasped around it. 'By the Lord!' he was gibbering and
mowing to himself--even above the storm I heard his shrill cry--'the
idols, the idols! they're laffin' at us.' I turned my head as he
spoke: the blackness was again lit up, and I saw by it the calm,
smiling faces of the Buddhas. All their eyes were fixed on us, and in
that strange and terrible light the stony smiles on their faces
broadened in devilish mockery. The rain came down in sheets; and the
continual and ceaseless flashes of lightning flared on the angry
yellow water around us, and made the rain seem as if there were
millions of strands of fine silver and gold wires hanging from the
blackness above. It was all I could do to keep myself in the canoe. At
each flash I looked at Stevens, and saw him in the same posture,
crouching low, like a cat. Then he began to sing, in a shrill voice,
that worked its way, as a bradawl through wood, past all the noise of
the elements. And now the whole heavens were bright with a pale light
that was given back by the hissing water around. The raindrops
sparkled like gems, and hit almost with the force of hailstones.
Stevens rose with a scream, and stood in the boat.

"'Sit down, for God's sake!' I called out.

"'I'm holding them with my life--the diamonds, the jewels!' he yelled
with a horrid laugh, and shook his fist at something. I followed his
movements; and there, riding in the storm, was a small canoe, paddled
by a man in the dress of old days. He was smiling at Stevens as, with
long easy sweeps of his paddle, he came closer and closer.

"'Shoot him!' yelled Stevens, as he pulled out his revolver and fired
once, twice, and then flung it with all his might at the vision. In
the effort he overbalanced the boat, and all I can remember is that I
was swimming for dear life, and being borne down with frightful
rapidity through that awful light. I saw something, which might have
been Hake Stevens, struggling for a moment on the water; but, Stevens
or not, it sank again almost immediately, and some one laughed too as
this happened.

"And I think," said Burgess, "that's about all. I never saw Hake
Stevens again, and I don't want ever to see Brito's jewels any more."

"How did you get out?"

"By absolute luck. I don't very well remember now; and By Jove! here
comes the breeze."

Even as he spoke, a cool puff of wind fanned us into life.





                        THE DEVIL'S MANUSCRIPT




                              CHAPTER I.

                          THE BLACK PACKET.


"M. De Bac? De Bac? I do not know the name."

"Gentleman says he knows you, sir, and has called on urgent business."

There was no answer, and John Brown, the ruined publisher, looked
about him in a dazed manner. He knew he was ruined; to-morrow the
world would know it also, and then--beggary stared him in the face,
and infamy too. For this the world would not care. Brown was not a
great man in "the trade," and his name in the _Gazette_ would not
attract notice; but his name, as he stood in the felon's dock, and the
ugly history a cross-examination might disclose would probably arouse
a fleeting interest, and then the world would go on with a pitiless
shrug of its shoulders. What does it matter to the moving wave of
humanity if one little drop of spray from its crest is blown into
nothing by the wind? Not a jot. But it was a terrible business for the
drop of spray, otherwise John Brown, publisher. He was at his best not
a good-looking man, rather mean-looking than otherwise, with a thin,
angular face, eyes as shifty as a jackal's, and shoulders shaped like
a champagne-bottle. As the shadow of coming ruin darkened over him, he
seemed to shrink and look meaner than ever. He had almost forgotten
the presence of his clerk. He could think of nothing but the morrow,
when Simmonds' voice again broke the stillness.

"Shall I say you will see him, sir?"

The question cut sharply into the silence, and brought Brown to
himself. He had half a mind to say "No." In the face of the coming
to-morrow, business, urgent or otherwise, was nothing to him. Yet,
after all, there could be no harm done in receiving the man. It would,
at any rate, be a distraction, and, lifting his head, Brown answered:

"Yes, I will see him, Simmonds."

Simmonds went out, closing the green baize door behind him. There was
a delay of a moment, and M. De Bac entered--a tall, thin figure,
bearing an oblong parcel, packed in shiny, black paper, and sealed
with flame-coloured wax.

"Good-day, Mr. Brown;" and M. De Bac, who, for all his foreign name,
spoke perfect English, extended his hand.

Brown rose, put his own cold fingers into the warm grasp of his
visitor, and offered him a seat.

"With your permission, Mr. Brown, I will take this other chair. It is
nearer the fire. I am accustomed to warm climates, as you doubtless
perceive;" and De Bac, suiting his action to his words, placed his
packet on the table, and began to slowly rub his long, lean fingers
together. The publisher glanced at him with some curiosity. M. De Bac
was as dark as an Italian, with clear, resolute features, and a
moustache, curled at the ends, thick enough to hide the sarcastic
curve of his thin lips. He was strongly if sparely built, and his
fiery black eyes met Brown's gaze with a look that ran through him
like a needle.

"You do not appear to recognise me, Mr. Brown?"--De Bac's voice was
very quiet and deep-toned.

"I have not the honour----" began the publisher; but his visitor
interrupted him.

"You mistake. We are quite old friends; and in time will always be
very near each other. I have a minute or two to spare"--he glanced at
a repeater--"and will prove to you that I know you. You are John
Brown, that very religious young man of Battersea, who, twelve years
ago, behaved like a blackguard to a girl at Homerton, and sent her
to----but no matter. You attracted my attention then; but,
unfortunately, I had no time to devote to you. Subsequently, you
effected a pretty little swindle--don't be angry, Mr. Brown--it _was_
very clever. Then you started in business on your own account, and
married. Things went well with you; you know the art of getting at a
low price, and selling at a high one. You are a born 'sweater.' Pardon
the word. You know how to keep men down like beasts, and go up
yourself. In doing this, you did me yeoman's service, although you are
even now not aware of this. You had one fault, you have it still, and
had you not been a gambler you might have been a rich man. Speculation
is a bad thing, Brown--I mean gambling speculation."

Brown was an Englishman, and it goes without saying that he had
courage. But there was something in De Bac's manner, some strange
power in the steady stare of those black eyes, that held him to his
seat as if pinned there.

As De Bac stopped, however, Brown's anger gave him strength. Every
word that was said was true, and stung like the lash of a whip. He
rose white with anger.

"Sir!" he began with quivering lips, and made a step forwards. Then he
stopped. It was as if the sombre fire in De Bac's gaze withered his
strength. An invisible hand seemed to drag him back into his seat and
hold him there.

"You are hasty, Mr. Brown;" and De Bac's even voice continued: "you
are really very rash. I was about to tell you a little more of your
history, to tell you you are ruined, and to-morrow every one in
London--it is the world for you, Brown--will know you are a beggar,
and many will know you are a cheat."

The publisher swore bitterly under his breath.

"You see, Mr. Brown," continued his strange visitor, "I know all about
you, and you will be surprised, perhaps, to hear that you deserve help
from me. You are too useful to let drift. I have therefore come to
save you."

"Save me?"

"Yes. By means of this manuscript here," he pointed to the packet,
"which you are going to publish."

Brown now realized that he was dealing with a lunatic. He tried to
stretch out his arm to touch the bell on the table; but found that he
had no power to do so. He made an attempt to shout to Simmonds; but
his tongue moved inaudibly in his mouth. He seemed only to have the
faculty of following De Bac's words, and of answering them. He gasped
out:

"It is impossible!"

"My friend"--and He Bac smiled mirthlessly--"you will publish that
manuscript. I will pay. The profits will be yours. It will make your
name, and you will be rich. You will even be able to build a church."

"Rich!" Brown's voice was very bitter. "M. De Bac, you said rightly. I
am a ruined man. Even if you were to pay for the publication of that
manuscript I could not do it now. It is too late. There are other
houses. Go to them."

"But not other John Browns. You are peculiarly adapted for my purpose.
Enough of this! I know what business is, and I have many things to
attend to. You are a small man, Mr. Brown, and it will take little to
remove your difficulties. See! Here are a thousand pounds. They will
free you from your present troubles," and De Bac tossed a pocket-book
on the table before Brown. "I do not want a receipt," he went on. "I
will call to-morrow for your final answer, and to settle details. If
you need it I will give you more money. This hour--twelve--will suit
me. _Adieu!_" He was gone like a flash, and Brown looked around in
blank amazement. He was as if suddenly aroused from a dream. He could
hardly believe the evidence of his senses, although he could see the
black packet, and the neat leather pocket-book with the initials "L.
De B." let in in silver on the outside. He rang his bell violently,
and Simmonds appeared.

"Has M. De Bac gone?"

"I don't know, sir. He didn't pass out through the door."

"There is no other way. You must have been asleep."

"Indeed I was not, sir."

Brown felt a chill as of cold fingers running down his backbone, but
pulled himself together with an effort. "It does not matter, Simmonds.
You may go."

Simmonds went out scratching his head. "How the demon did he get out?"
he asked himself. "Must have been sleeping after all. The guv'nor
seems a bit dotty to-day. It's the smash coming--sure."

He wrote a letter or two, and then taking his hat, sallied forth to an
aërated bread-shop for his cheap and wholesome lunch, for Simmonds was
a saving young man, engaged to a young lady living out Camden Town
way. Simmonds perfectly understood the state of affairs, and was not a
little anxious about matters, for the mother of his _fiancée_, a widow
who let lodgings, had only agreed to his engagement after much
persuasion; and if he had to announce the fact that, instead of
"thirty bob a week," as he put it, his income was nothing at all,
there would be an end of everything.

"M'ria's all right," he said to his friend Wilkes, in trustful
confidence as they sat over their lunch; "but that old torpedo"--by
which name he designated his mother-in-law-elect--"she'll raise Cain
if there's a smash-up."

In the meantime, John Brown tore open the pocketbook with shaking
hands, and, with a crisp rustling, a number of new bank-notes fell
out, and lay in a heap before him. He counted them one by one. They
totalled to a thousand pounds exactly. He was a small man. M. De Bac
had said so truly, if a little rudely, and the money was more than
enough to stave off ruin. De Bac had said, too, that if needed he
would give him more, and then Brown fell to trembling all over. He was
like a man snatched from the very jaws of death. At Battersea he wore
a blue ribbon; but now he went to a cabinet, filled a glass with raw
brandy, and drained it at a gulp. In a minute or so the generous
cordial warmed his chilled blood, and picking up the notes, he counted
them again, and thrust them into his breast-pocket. After this he
paced the room up and down in a feverish manner, longing for the
morrow when he could settle up the most urgent demands against him.
Then, on a sudden, a thought struck him. It was almost as if it had
been whispered in his ear. Why trouble at all about matters? He had a
clear thousand with him, and in an hour he could be out of the
country! He hesitated, but prudence prevailed. Extradition laws
stretched everywhere; and there was another thing--that extraordinary
madman, De Bac, had promised more money on the morrow. After all, it
was better to stay.

As he made this resolve his eyes fell on the black packet on the
table. The peculiar colour of the seals attracted his attention. He
bent over them, and saw that the wax bore an impress of a V-shaped
shield, within which was set a trident. He noticed also that the
packet was tied with a silver thread. His curiosity was excited. He
sat down, snipped the threads with a penknife, tore off the black
paper covering, flung it into the fire, and saw before him a bulky
manuscript exquisitely written on very fine paper. A closer
examination showed that they were a number of short stories. Now Brown
was in no mood to read; but the title of the first tale caught his
eye, and the writing was so legible that he had glanced over half a
dozen lines before he was aware of the fact. Those first half-dozen
lines were sufficient to make him read the page, and when he had read
the page the publisher felt he was before the work of a genius.

He was unable to stop now; and, with his head resting between his
hands, he read on tirelessly. Simmonds came in once or twice and left
papers on the table, but his master took no notice of him. Brown
forgot all about his lunch, and turning over page after page read as
if spellbound. He was a business man, and was certain the book would
sell in thousands. He read as one inspired to look into the author's
thoughts and see his design. Short as the stories were, they were
Titanic fragments, and every one of them taught a hideous lesson of
corruption. Some of them cloaked in a religious garb, breathed a
spirit of pitiless ferocity; others were rich with the sensuous odours
of an Eastern garden; others, again, were as the tender green of moss
hiding the treacherous deeps of a quicksand; and all of them bore the
hall-mark of genius. They moved the man sitting there to tears, they
shook him with laughter, they seemed to rock his very soul asleep;
but through it all he saw, as the mariner views the beacon fire
on a rocky coast, the deadly plan of the writer. There was money in
them--thousands--and all was to be his. Brown's sluggish blood was
running to flame, a strange strength glowed in his face, and an
uncontrollable admiration for De Bac's evil power filled him. The
book, when published, might corrupt generations yet unborn; but that
was nothing to Brown. It meant thousands for him, and an eternal fame
to De Bac. He did not grudge the writer the fame as long as he kept
the thousands.

"By Heaven!" and he brought his fist down on the table with a crash,
"the man may be a lunatic; but he is the greatest genius the world
ever saw--or he is the devil incarnate."

And somebody laughed softly in the room.

The publisher looked up with a start, and saw Simmonds standing before
him.

"Did you laugh, Simmonds?"

"No, sir!" replied the clerk with a surprised look.

"Who laughed then?"

"There is no one here but ourselves, sir--and I didn't laugh."

"Did you hear nothing?"

"Nothing, sir."

"Strange!" and Brown began to feel chill again.

"What time is it?" he asked with an effort.

"It is half-past six, sir."

"So late as that? You may go, Simmonds. Leave me the keys. I will be
here for some time. Good-evening."

"Mad as a coot," muttered Simmonds to himself; "must break the news to
M'ria to-night. Oh, Lor'!" and his eyes were very wet as he went out
into the Strand, and got into a blue omnibus.

When he was gone, Brown turned to the fire, poker in hand. To his
surprise he saw that the black paper was still there, burning red hot,
and the wax of the seals was still intact--the seals themselves
shining like orange glow-lights. He beat at the paper with the poker;
but instead of crumbling to ashes it yielded passively to the stroke,
and came back to its original shape. Then a fury came on Brown. He
raked at the fire, threw more coals over the paper, and blew at the
flames with his bellows until they roared up the chimney; but still
the coppery glare of the packet-cover never turned to the grey of
ashes. Finally, he could endure it no longer, and, putting the
manuscript into the safe, turned off the electric light, and stole out
of his office like a thief.




                             CHAPTER II.

                           THE RED TRIDENT.


When Beggarman, Bowles & Co., of Providence Passage, Lombard Street,
called at eleven o'clock on the morning following De Bac's visit,
their representative was not a little surprised to find the firm's
bills met in hard cash, and Simmonds paid him with a radiant face.
When the affair was settled, the clerk leaned back in his chair,
saying half-aloud to himself, "By George! I am glad after all M'ria
did not keep our appointment in the Camden Road last night." Then his
face began to darken. "Wonder where she could have been, though?" his
thoughts ran on; "half sorry I introduced her to Wilkes last Sunday at
Victoria Park. Wilkes ain't half the man I am though," and he tried
to look at himself in the window-pane, "but he has two pound ten a
week--Lord! There's the guv'nor ringing." He hurried into Brown's
room, received a brief order, and was about to go back when the
publisher spoke again.

"Simmonds!"

"Sir."

"If M. De Bac calls, show him in at once."

"Sir," and the clerk went out.

Left to himself, Brown tried to go on with the manuscript; but was not
able to do so. He was impatient for the coming of De Bac, and kept
watching the hands of the clock as they slowly travelled towards
twelve. When he came to the office in the morning Brown had looked
with a nervous fear in the fireplace, half expecting to find the black
paper still there; and it was a considerable relief to his mind to
find it was not. He could do nothing, not even open the envelopes of
the letters that lay on his table. He made an effort to find
occupation in the morning's paper. It was full of some absurd
correspondence on a trivial subject, and he wondered at the thousands
of fools who could waste time in writing and in reading yards of print
on the theme of "Whether women should wear neckties." The ticking of
the clock irritated him. He flung the paper aside, just as the door
opened and Simmonds came in. For a moment Brown thought he had come to
announce De Bac's arrival; but no--Simmonds simply placed a square
envelope on the table before Brown.

"Pass-book from Bransom's, sir, just come in;" and he went out.

Brown took it up mechanically, and opened the envelope. A type-written
letter fell out with the passbook. He ran his eyes over it with
astonishment. It was briefly to inform him that M. De Bac had paid
into Brown's account yesterday afternoon the sum of five thousand
pounds, and that, adjusting overdrafts, the balance at his credit was
four thousand seven hundred and twenty pounds thirteen shillings and
three pence. Brown rubbed his eyes. Then he hurriedly glanced at the
pass-book. The figures tallied--there was no error, no mistake. He
pricked himself with his penknife to see if he was awake, and finally
shouted to Simmonds:

"Read this letter aloud to me, Simmonds," he said.

Simmonds' eyes opened, but he did as he was bidden, and there was no
mistake about the account.

"Anything else, sir?" asked Simmonds when he had finished.

"No--nothing," and Brown was once more alone. He sat staring at the
figures before him in silence, almost mesmerizing himself with the
intentness of his gaze.

"My God!" he burst out at last, in absolute wonder.

"Who is your God, Brown?" answered a deep voice.

"I--I--M. De Bac! How did you come?"

"I did not drop down the chimney," said De Bac with a grin; "your
clerk announced me in the ordinary way, but you were so absorbed you
did not hear. So I took the liberty of sitting in this chair, and
awaiting your return to earthly matters. You were dreaming, Brown--by
the way, who is your God?" he repeated with a low laugh.

"I--I do not understand, sir."

"Possibly not, possibly not. I wouldn't bother about the matter. Ah! I
see Bransom's have sent you your pass-book! Sit down, Brown. I hate to
see a man fidgeting about--I paid in that amount yesterday on a second
thought. It is enough--eh?"

Brown's jackal eyes contracted. Perhaps he could get more out of De
Bac? But a look at the strong impassive face before him frightened
him.

"More than enough, sir," he stammered; and then, with a rush, "I am
grateful--anything I can do for you?"

"Oh! I know, I know, Brown--by the way, you do not object to smoke?"

"Certainly not. I do not smoke myself."

"In Battersea, eh?" And De Bac pulling out a silver cheroot case held
it out to Brown. But the publisher declined.

"Money wouldn't buy a smoke like that in England," remarked De Bac,
"but as you will. I wouldn't smoke if I were you. Such abstinence
looks respectable and means nothing." He put a cigar between his
lips, and pointed his forefinger at the end. To Brown's amazement an
orange-flame licked out from under the fingernail, and vanished like a
flash of lightning; but the cigar was alight, and its fragrant odour
filled the room. It reached even Simmonds, who sniffed at it like a
buck scenting the morning air. "By George!" he exclaimed in wonder,
"what baccy!"

M. De Bac settled himself comfortably in his chair, and spoke with the
cigar between his teeth. "Now you have recovered a little from your
surprise, Brown, I may as well tell you that I never carry matches.
This little scientific discovery I have made is very convenient, is it
not?"

"I have never seen anything like it."

"There are a good many things you have not seen, Brown--but to work.
Take a pencil and paper and note down what I say. You can tell me when
I have done if you agree or not."

Brown did as he was told, and De Bac spoke slowly and carefully.

"The money I have given you is absolutely your own on the following
terms. You will publish the manuscript I left with you, enlarge your
business, and work as you have hitherto worked--as a 'sweater.' You
may speculate as much as you like. You will not lose. You need not
avoid the publication of religious books, but you must never give in
charity secretly. I do not object to a big cheque for a public object,
and your name in all the papers. It will be well for you to hound down
the vicious. Never give them a chance to recover themselves. You will
be a legislator. Strongly uphold all those measures which, under a
moral cloak, will do harm to mankind. I do not mention them. I do not
seek to hamper you with detailed instructions. Work on these general
lines, and you will do what I want. A word more. It will be advisable
whenever you have a chance to call public attention to a great evil
which is also a vice. Thousands who have never heard of it before will
hear of it then--and human nature is very frail. You have noted all
this down?"

"I have. You are a strange man, M. De Bac."

M. De Bac frowned, and Brown began to tremble.

"I do not permit you to make observations about me, Mr. Brown."

"I beg your pardon, sir."

"Do not do so again. Will you agree to all this? I promise you
unexampled prosperity for ten years. At the end of that time I shall
want you elsewhere. And you must agree to take a journey with me."

"A long one, sir?" Brown's voice was just a shade satirical.

M. De Bac smiled oddly. "No--in your case I promise a quick passage.
These are all the conditions I attach to my gift of six thousand
pounds to you."

Brown's amazement did not blind him to the fact of the advantage he
had, as he thought, over his visitor. The six thousand pounds were
already his, and he had given no promise. With a sudden boldness he
spoke out.

"And if I decline?"

"You will return me my money, and my book, and I will go elsewhere."

"The manuscript, yes--but if I refuse to give back the money?"

"Ha! ha! ha!" M. De Bac's mirthless laugh chilled Brown to the bone.
"Very good, Brown--but you won't refuse. Sign that like a good
fellow," and he flung a piece of paper towards Brown, who saw that it
was a promissory note, drawn up in his name, agreeing to pay M. De Bac
the sum of six thousand pounds on demand.

"I shall do no such thing," said Brown stoutly.

M. De Bac made no answer, but calmly touched the bell. In a
half-minute Simmonds appeared.

"Be good enough to witness Mr. Brown's signature to that document,"
said De Bac to him, and then fixed his gaze on Brown. There was a
moment of hesitation, and then--the publisher signed his name, and
Simmonds did likewise as a witness. When the latter had gone, De Bac
carefully put the paper by in a letter-case he drew from his vest
pocket.

"Your scientific people would call this an exhibition of odic force,
Brown--eh?"

Brown made no answer. He was shaking in every limb, and great pearls
of sweat rolled down his forehead.

"You see, Brown," continued De Bac, "after all you are a free agent.
Either agree to my terms and keep the money, or say you will not, pay
me back, receive your note-of-hand, and I go elsewhere with my book.
Come--time is precious."

"And from Brown's lips there hissed a low 'I agree.'

"Then that is settled," and De Bac rose from his chair. "There is a
little thing more--stretch out your arm like a good fellow--the right
arm."

Brown did so; and De Bac placed his forefinger on his wrist, just
between what palmists call "the lines of life." The touch was as that
of a red-hot iron, and with a quick cry Brown drew back his hand and
looked at it. On his wrist was a small red trident, as cleanly marked
as if it had been tattooed into the skin. The pain was but momentary;
and, as he looked at the mark, he heard De Bac say, "Adieu once more,
Brown. I will find my way out--don't trouble to rise." Brown heard him
wish Simmonds an affable "Good-day," and he was gone.




                             CHAPTER III.

                       "THE MARK OF THE BEAST."


It was early in the spring that Brown published "The Yellow
Dragon"--as the collection of tales left with him by De Bac was
called--and the success of the book surpassed his wildest
expectations. It became the rage. There were the strangest rumours
afloat as to its authorship, for no one knew De Bac, and the name of
the writer was supposed to be an assumed one. It was written by a
clergyman; it was penned by a schoolgirl; it had employed the leisure
of a distinguished statesman during his retirement; it was the work of
an ex-crowned head. These, and such-like statements, were poured forth
one day to be contradicted the next. Wherever the book was noticed it
was either with the most extravagant praise or the bitterest rancour.
But friend and foe were alike united on one thing--that of ascribing
to its unknown author a princely genius. The greatest of the reviews,
after pouring on "The Yellow Dragon" the vials of its wrath, concluded
with these words of unwilling praise: "There is not a sentence of this
book which should ever have been written, still less published; but we
do not hesitate to say that, having been written and given to the
world, there is hardly a line of this terrible work which will not
become immortal--to the misery of mankind."

Be this as it may, the book sold in tens of thousands, and Brown's
fortune was assured. In ten years a man may do many things; but during
the ten years that followed the publication of "The Yellow Dragon,"
Brown did so many things that he astonished "the city," and it takes
not a little to do that. It was not alone the marvellous growth of his
business--although that advanced by leaps and bounds until it
overshadowed all others--it was his wonderful luck on the Stock
Exchange. Whatever he touched turned to gold. He was looked upon as
the Napoleon of finance. His connection with "The Yellow Dragon" was
forgotten when his connection with the yellow sovereign was
remembered. He had a palace in Berkshire; another huge pile owned
by him overlooked Hyde Park. He was a county member and a
cabinet-minister. He had refused a peerage and built a church. Could
ambition want more? He had clean forgotten De Bac. From him he had
heard no word, received no sign, and he looked upon him as dead. At
first, when his eyes fell on the red trident on his wrist, he was wont
to shudder all over; but as years went on he became accustomed to the
mark, and thought no more of it than if it had been a mole. In
personal appearance he was but little changed, except that his hair
was thin and grey, and there was a bald patch on the top of his head.
His wife had died four years ago, and he was now contemplating another
marriage--a marriage that would ally him with a family dating from the
Confessor.

Such was John Brown, when we meet him again ten years after De Bac's
visit, seated at a large writing-table in his luxurious office. A
clerk standing beside him was cutting open the envelopes of the
morning's post, and placing the letters one by one before his master.
It is our friend Simmonds--still a young man, but bent and old beyond
his years, and still on "thirty bob" a week. And the history of
Simmonds will show how Brown carried out De Bac's instructions.

When "The Yellow Dragon" came out and business began to expand,
Simmonds, having increased work, was ambitious enough to expect a rise
in his salary, and addressed his chief on the subject. He was put off
with a promise, and on the strength of that promise Simmonds, being no
wiser than many of his fellows, married M'ria; and husband and wife
managed to exist somehow with the help of the mother-in-law. Then the
mother-in-law died, and there was only the bare thirty shillings a
week on which to live, to dress, to pay Simmonds' way daily to the
city and back, and to feed more than two mouths--for Simmonds was
amongst the blessed who have their quivers full. Still the expected
increase of pay did not come. Other men came into the business and
passed over Simmonds. Brown said they had special qualifications. They
had; and John Brown knew Simmonds better than he knew himself. The
other men were paid for doing things Simmonds could not have done to
save his life; but he was more than useful in his way. A hundred times
it was in the mind of the wretched clerk to resign his post and seek
to better himself elsewhere. But he had given hostages to fortune.
There was M'ria and her children, and M'ria set her face resolutely
against risk. They had no reserve upon which to fall back, and it was
an option between partial and total starvation. So "Sim," as M'ria
called him, held on and battled with the wolf at the door, the wolf
gaining ground inch by inch. Then illness came, and debt, and
then--temptation. "Sim" fell, as many a better man than he has fallen.

Brown found it out, and saw his opportunity to behave generously, and
make his generosity pay. He got a written confession of his guilt from
Simmonds, and retained him in his service forever on thirty shillings
a week. And Simmonds' life became such as made him envy the lot of a
Russian serf, of a Siberian exile, of a negro in the old days of the
sugar plantations. He became a slave, a living machine who ground out
his daily hours of work; he became mean and sordid in soul, as one
does become when hope is extinct. Such was Simmonds as he cut open the
envelopes of Brown's letters, and the great man, reading them quickly,
endorsed them with terse remarks in blue pencil, for subsequent
disposal by his secretary. A sudden exclamation from the clerk, and
Brown looked up.

"What is it?" he asked sharply.

"Only this, sir," and Simmonds held before Brown's eyes a jet black
envelope; and as he gazed at it, his mind travelled back ten years, to
that day when he stood on the brink of public infamy and ruin, and De
Bac had saved him. For a moment everything faded before Brown's eyes,
and he saw himself in a dingy room, with the gaunt figure of the
author of "The Yellow Dragon," and the maker of his fortune, before
him.

"Shall I open it, sir?" Simmonds' voice reached him as from a far
distance, and Brown roused himself with an effort.

"No," he said, "give it to me, and go for the present."

When the bent figure of the clerk had passed out of the room, Brown
looked at the envelope carefully. It bore a penny stamp and the
impress of the postmark was not legible. The superscription was in
white ink, and it was addressed to Mr. John Brown. The "Mr." on the
letter irritated Brown, for he was now The Right Hon'ble John Brown,
and was punctilious on that score. He was so annoyed that at first he
thought of casting the letter unopened into the waste-paper basket
beside him, but changed his mind, and tore open the cover. A note-card
discovered itself. The contents were brief and to the point:

"_Get ready to start. I will call for you at the close of the day_. L.
De B."

For a moment Brown was puzzled, then the remembrance of his old
compact with De Bac came to him. He fairly laughed. To think that he,
The Right Hon'ble John Brown, the richest man in England, and one of
the most powerful, should be written to like that! Ordered to go
somewhere he did not even know! Addressed like a servant! The cool
insolence of the note amused Brown first, and then he became enraged.
He tore the note into fragments and cast it from him. "Curse the
madman," he said aloud, "I'll give him in charge if he annoys me." A
sudden twinge in his right wrist made him hurriedly look at the spot.
There was a broad pink circle, as large as a florin, around the mark
of the trident, and it smarted and burned as the sting of a wasp. He
ran to a basin of water and dipped his arm in to the elbow; but the
pain became intolerable, and, finally, ordering his carriage, he drove
home. That evening there was a great civic banquet in the city, and
amongst the guests was The Right Hon'ble John Brown.

All through the afternoon he had been in agony with his wrist, but
towards evening the pain ceased as suddenly as it had come on, and
Brown attended the banquet, a little pale and shaken, but still
himself. On Brown's right hand sat the Bishop of Browboro', on his
left a most distinguished scientist, and amongst the crowd of waiters
was Simmonds, who had hired himself out for the evening to earn an
extra shilling or so to eke out his miserable subsistence. The man of
science had just returned from Mount Atlas, whither he had gone to
observe the transit of Mercury, and had come back full of stories of
witchcraft. He led the conversation in that direction, and very soon
the Bishop, Brown, and himself were engaged in the discussion of
_diablerie_. The Bishop was a learned and a saintly man, and was a
"believer"; the scientist was puzzled by what he had seen, and Brown
openly scoffed.

"Look here!" and pulling back his cuff, he showed the red mark on his
wrist to his companions, "if I were to tell you how that came here,
you would say the devil himself marked me."

"I confess I am curious," said the scientist; and the Bishop fixed an
inquiring gaze upon Brown. Simmonds was standing behind, and
unconsciously drew near. Then the man, omitting many things, told the
history of the mark on his wrist. He left out much, but he told enough
to make the scientist edge his chair a little further from him, and a
look of grave compassion, not untinged with scorn, to come into the
eyes of the Bishop. As Brown came to the end of his story he became
unnaturally excited, he raised his voice, and, with a sudden gesture,
held his wrist close to the Bishop's face. "There!" he said, "I
suppose you would say the devil did that?"

And as the Bishop looked, a voice seemed to breathe in his ear: "_And
he caused all ... to receive a mark in their right hand, or in their
foreheads_." It was as if his soul was speaking to him and urging him
to say the words aloud. He did not; but with a pale face gently put
aside Brown's hand. "I do not know, Mr. Brown--but I think you are
called upon for a speech."

It was so; and, after a moment's hesitation, Brown rose. He was a
fluent speaker, and the occasion was one with which he was peculiarly
qualified to deal. He began well; but as he went on those who looked
upon him saw that he was ghastly pale, and that the veins stood out on
his high forehead in blue cords. As he spoke he made some allusion to
those men who have risen to eminence from an obscure position. He
spoke of himself as one of these, and then began to tell the story of
"The Devil's Manuscript," as he called it, with a mocking look at the
Bishop. As he went on he completely lost command over himself, and the
story of the manuscript became the story of his life. He concealed
nothing, he passed over nothing. He laid all his sordid past before
his hearers with a vivid force. His listeners were astonished into
silence; perhaps curiosity kept them still. But, as the long tale of
infamy went on, some, in pity for the man, and believing him struck
mad, tried to stop him, but in vain. He came at last to the incident
of the letter, and told how De Bac was to call for him to-night. "The
Bishop of Browboro'," he said with a jarring laugh, "thought De Bac
was the fiend himself," but he (Brown) knew better; he--he stopped,
and, with a half-inarticulate cry, began to back slowly from the
table, his eyes fixed on the entrance to the room. And now a strange
thing happened. There was not a man in the room who had the power to
move or to speak; they were as if frozen to their seats; as if struck
into stone. Some were able to follow Brown's glance, but could see
nothing. All were able to see that in Brown's face was an awful fear,
and that he was trying to escape from a horrible presence which was
moving slowly towards him, and which was visible to himself alone.
Inch by inch Brown gave way, until he at last reached the wall, and
stood with his back to it, with his arms spread out, in the position
of one crucified. His face was marble white, and a dreadful terror and
a pitiful appeal shone in his eyes. His blue lips were parted as of
one in the dolors of death.

The silence was profound.

There were strong men there; men who had faced and overcome dangers,
who had held their lives in their hands, who had struggled against
desperate odds and won; but there was not a man who did not now feel
weak, powerless, helpless as a child before that invisible, advancing
terror that Brown alone could see. They could move no hand to aid,
lift no voice to pray. All they could do was to wait in that dreadful
silence and to watch. Time itself seemed to stop. It was as if the
stillness had lasted for hours.

Suddenly Brown's face, so white before, flushed a crimson purple, and
with a terrible cry he fell forwards on the polished woodwork of the
floor.

As he fell it seemed as if the weight which held all still was on the
moment removed, and they were free. With scared faces they gathered
around the fallen man and raised him. He was quite dead; but on his
forehead, where there was no mark before, was the impress of a red
trident.

A man, evidently one of the waiters, who had forced his way into the
group, laid his finger on the mark and looked up at the Bishop. There
was an unholy exultation in his face as he met the priest's eyes, and
said:

"He's marked twice--_curse him!_"





                          UNDER THE ACHILLES

                        O Charity! thy mystery
                        Doth cover many things.

"Now, don't break hup the 'appy 'ome!"

"Move those wite mice o' yourn hon, then, 'stead o' sittin' like a
hitalian monkey hon a bloomin' barrel horgan."

A hansom had hacked into a green Atlas in Piccadilly Circus, at the
point where Regent Street and Piccadilly meet. From his height of
vantage the omnibus driver threw a sarcasm at the cabman, and Jehu,
instead of attending to business, lifted his head to fling back an
answer. The sorrel in the hansom likewise lifted his head, stood on
his hind legs, and then, plunging sideways on to the pavement, locked
the wheels of the two conveyances together, completely stopping the
roadway. It was not a good time for a thing of this kind to happen. It
was Piccadilly Circus, just after the big furnaces of the theatres had
let out their red-hot contents. The molten stream was hissing through
the streets, boiling in the throbbing Circus. Such a crowd was there,
too, as no city besides may show; but London need not plume itself on
this. Here, in that hour, when the past of one day was becoming the
present of another, assembled together the good and the bad. The
honest father of a family, with a pure wife or daughter on his arm,
jostled the soiled dove in her jewelled shame. Here were gathered the
men whose lives by daylight were white, those who trod the primrose
path, and the workers of the nation; gilded infamy, tawdry sin, joy
and sorrow, shame and innocence, vice blacker than night, more hideous
than despair. Above blazed the electric stars of the Monico and the
Criterion. A stream of fire marked Coventry Street. To the right the
lamp glare terminated abruptly in Waterloo Place, leaving the moon and
the lonely Park together. From all the great arteries, through
Shaftesbury Avenue, through Coventry Street, through the Haymarket,
the toilers of the night beat up to the roaring Circus, and it was
full. I, a derelict of humanity, was there. In the crowd that fought
and elbowed its way for room--it was a crowd all elbows--I was the
first to reach the hansom. There were two occupants: a man who lay
back with a scared face, and a woman who laughed as she attempted to
step out. It was as daylight, and the rush of an awful recollection
came to me--God help me! It was my wife! My hand stretched out to aid
fell to my side; but, as I staggered back, the brute in the hansom
plunged yet more violently than before. There was an alarmed cry, a
swaying motion, and the cab turned over slowly, like a foundering
ship. I could not control myself. I sprang forward, and lifting the
woman from the cab placed her on the pavement. There was a bit of a
cheer, and before I knew it she thrust her purse into my hand.

"Take this, man, and----"

I waited to hear no more; a sudden frightened look came into her eyes,
and I turned and fled up Piccadilly. Some fool cried "Stop thief!"
Some other one took up the cry. In a moment every one was running. I
ran with the crowd, my hand still clenched tightly on the purse, which
seemed to burn into it. It was too well dressed a crowd to run far.
Opposite Hatchett's it tired, and public attention was engaged by an
altercation, which ended in a fight, between a bicyclist and a
policeman. I had sense enough left to pull up and slacken my pace to a
fast walk. I went straight on. It did not matter to me where I went.
If I had the pluck I should have killed myself long ago. It takes a
lot of pluck to kill one's self. Five years had gone since Mary passed
out of my life. Five years! It was six years ago that I, Richard
Manning of the Bengal Cavalry, had cut for hearts, and turned up--the
deuce! What right had I to blame her? Whose fault was it? I asked this
question aloud to myself, and a wretch selling matches answered:

"Most your hown, guv'nor: buy a box o' matches to warm yer bones with
a smoke--honly a penny!"

I looked up with a start. I was opposite the Naval and Military. Once
I belonged there. The very thought made me mad again, and I cursed
aloud in the bitterness of my heart.

"Drunk as a fly," remarked the match-seller to the public at large,
indicating me with a handful of matchboxes.

Opposite Apsley House I was alone. All the big crowd on the pavement
had died away, only the street seemed full of flashing lights.

Surely some one called Dick? I stopped, but for a second only. I must
be getting out of my mind, I thought, as I hurried on again. A few
steps brought me to Hyde Park Corner. A few more brought me close to
the foot of the Achilles, and, without knowing what I was doing, I
sank into a seat. One must rest somewhere, and I was dead beat. The
long shadow of the statue fell over me, clothing me in darkness. It
fell beyond too, on to the walk, and the huge black silhouette
stretched even unto the trees. A portion of my seat was in moonlight,
and the muffled rumble of carriage wheels reached my ears from the
road in front. It might have been fancy; but I saw a dark figure
glide past the moonlit road into the shadow behind me. Some poor
wretch--some pariah of the streets as lost as I. I wonder if any of
the three-volume novelists ever felt the sensation of being absolutely
stone broke. Nothing but these words "stone broke" can describe it. I
am not going to try and paint a picture of my condition. I was stone
broke, and Mary--the very air was full of Marys!

Mechanically I opened the purse I still held in my hand, and looked at
its contents. I don't know why I did this. I remember once shooting a
stag, and when I came up to it, I found the poor beast in its mortal
agony trying to nibble the heather--it was nibbling the heather. And
here I was, wounded to death, looking at the contents of a Russian
leather purse with idle curiosity. It was heavy with gold--her
gold--Mary's. Damn her! she ruined my life. I flung the purse from me,
and it made a black arc in the moonlight, ere it fell with a little
clash beyond. I saw the gold as it rolled on the gravel walk in red
splashes of light. Ruined my life? Did Mary do this? The old, old
story--"the woman gave me and I did eat." Of course Mary ruined my
life. Had I anything to do with the wreck of hers? If so, I had
committed worse than murder--I had killed a soul. I put my hot head
between my hands and tried to think it out; I would think it all out
to-night, and give my verdict for or against myself. If against me,
then I knew how to die at last. It would not be as at that other time,
when my courage failed me. The bitterness of death was already past. I
would go over what had been, balance each little grain, measure forth
each atom, and the end would be--the end.

It needed no effort. The past came up of itself before me. Five years
of soldiering in Afghanistan, the heights of Cherasiab, the march to
Candahar, a medal, a clasp, a mention in dispatches. This was good.
Then came that staff appointment at Simla, and the downward path.
Life was so easy, so pleasant. I was always gregarious, fond of my
fellow-creatures, easy-going; and as each day passed I slipped down
lower and lower. There were other deeps to come, of which I then knew
not. A lot of conscience was rubbed out of me by that time. Mrs.
Cantilivre must answer for that. There again: the blame on the woman!
But when a society belle makes up her mind to form a man, she takes a
lot of the nap off the fine feelings. I tried to pull up once or
twice, but the effort was beyond me. I drifted back again. Things that
were formerly looked upon by me as luxuries became necessaries; I
developed a taste for gambling, and got into debt. Pace of this kind
could not last long. There came a day when I got ill, and then came
furlough. A long spell of leave, with a load of debt on my shoulders;
but my creditors were, to do them justice, very patient. The voyage
gave me plenty of opportunity to reflect, and the folly of the past
came before me vividly. I would bury the past, have done with Myra
Cantilivre, and start afresh. England again! Words cannot describe the
feelings that stirred me when I saw the Eddystone, with the big waves
lashing about it. Arriving on Sunday, I had to spend the afternoon in
Plymouth, and saw Drake looking out over the sea. All the old fire was
warming back in my heart. There was time to mend all yet: when I got
back I meant to win the cherry ribbon and bronze star--no more
flirtation under the deodars for me--I would soldier again.

A few months later I met Mary, and in a month she had promised to be
my wife. I can see her yet as she stood before me with downcast head,
and the pink flush on her cheek. She lifted her eyes to mine, and the
look in them was my answer. A few months afterwards we were married,
and almost immediately sailed for India. I give my word that I meant
all that a man should mean for his wife. But one cannot live in the
world and look on things in the same light as an innocent woman. I had
buried all the past, as I thought, forever. Myra Cantilivre was dead
to me, but she had done her work. It was an effort to me always to
live in the pure air of Mary's thoughts, and one day I said something
on board the steamer that jarred on my wife. It was a comedown from
cloudland, and was the first little rift within the lute. I pulled
myself up, however, and smoothed it over. Then the scheme which I
worked out took its birth in my mind. If there was to be any happiness
in our future life, Mary must either come down to my level or I must
go up to hers. I had tried and failed. There was nothing for it but to
bring her down. This fine sensitiveness of hers necessitated my having
to play the hypocrite forever. Then again I did not like to unveil
myself. Every man likes to be a hero to his wife. I suppose she finds
him out, however, sooner or later. Perhaps it would be better to let
Mary find out gradually. It would in effect be carrying out my
programme in the best possible way. Now, I had hitherto concealed from
Mary the fact that I was in debt; but something happened at Simla,
soon after we reached there, that necessitated her knowing this. There
was another little difference. It was not, Mary said, the matter of
the debt, but the fact of my concealing it, that hurt her. She brought
up in minute detail little plans of mine, sketched without
consideration of the bonds of my creditors, and put them in such a
manner that it appeared as if I had told untruths to her regarding
myself. The confession has to be made: they were practically untruths;
but a man during his courtship, and the first weeks of his married
life, has often to say things which would not bear scrutiny. My wife
showed she had a retentive memory, and, for a girl, a very clear and
incisive way of putting things. The storm passed over at last, and
then Mary set herself to put my disordered affairs to rights. Debts
had to be paid, and rigid economy was the order of the day; but coming
back to Simla meant coming back to the old things. I tried to second
Mary's efforts to the best of my ability; but I felt I couldn't last
long. I met Mrs. Cantilivre one evening at Viceregal Lodge. She
received me like an old friend, and begged to be introduced to Mary.
She made only one reference to what had been:

"And so, Dick, the past is all forgotten?"

"It is good to forget, Mrs. Cantilivre; and I am now hedged in with
all kinds of fortifications."

I looked towards Mary, where she stood talking to Redvers of the
Sikhs--I always hated Redvers, and never saw what women admired in
him.

Myra laughed at my speech--it was an odd little laugh, and I did not
like it.

"Who makes her dresses?" she asked. "And now give me your arm and take
me to your wife."

I should not have done it, I know I should not, but my hand was
forced. If I had had the moral courage I should have got out of it
somehow. It was just that want of moral courage that broke me. This is
something like a verdict against myself, but it is worth while setting
forth the whole indictment. I began to tire of Mary's rigid rules of
honesty and strict economy. She tied me down too much. I should have
been allowed a run now and again. The short of it was that I began to
break out of bounds, and in a few months was leading my old life once
again. There was this difference, however--that formerly I had nothing
to fear, whereas now it was necessary to conceal things. I flattered
myself that I was still her idol. I should have known she had long ago
perceived that the idol was of the earth, earthy. I had occasionally
to resort to falsehood, and was almost as invariably discovered. I had
not a sufficiently good memory to be a complete liar. The shame of it
was knowing I was discovered; but Mary never threw it up to my face.
She set herself to her duty loyally, though day by day I could see the
despair eating its way through her. I had taken to gambling again, and
as usual had bad luck and lost heavily. This necessitated my having to
borrow some more money, which I arranged to pay back by instalments;
and then I had to tell my wife that, owing to an alteration in the
scales of pay, my income was so much the less. I upbraided the rules
of the service, and on this occasion Mary believed me. I resolved to
gamble no more. About this time my wife got ill, and when she
recovered there was a small Mary in the house. During her illness
things were so upset that I was compelled to frequent my club more
than ever. To add to the worry to which I was subjected, the child got
ill, and really seemed very ill indeed. All this involved expenditure
which I did not know how to meet, and in despair one evening I turned
to the cards again. It was the only thing to do. It was absurd to lose
all I had lost, for the want of a little pluck to pull it back again.

One evening I had just cut into a table when a note was put into my
hands. It was from my wife, asking me to come home at once, as the
child seemed very ill. It was rather hard luck being dragged home; and
I could do nothing. So I dropped a note back to Mary to say she had
better send for the doctor, and that I would come as soon as possible.
I meant to go immediately after one rubber. I won. It would have been
a sin to have turned on my luck, and I played on until the small hours
of the morning, and for once was fortunate. I rode back in high
spirits. Near my gate some one galloped past me; I thought I
recognised Brasingham's (the doctor's) nag, but wasn't quite sure. At
any rate, if it was, Mary had taken my advice. I rode in softly and
entered the house. A dim light was burning in the sitting-room; beyond
it was the baby's room. I lifted the curtain and entered. As I came in
my wife's ayah rose and salaamed, then stole softly out. I cannot tell
why, but I felt I was in the presence of death. Mary was kneeling by
the little bed, and in it lay our child, very quiet and still. I
stepped up to my wife and put my hand on her shoulder. She looked up
at me with a silent reproach in her eyes. "Wife," I said, "give me one
chance more"; and without a word she came to me and lay sobbing on my
heart.

We went away after that for about a month; and I think that month was
a more restful one than any we had spent since the first weeks of our
marriage. By the end of it, however, I was weary of the new life. I
must have been mad, but I longed to get again to the old excitements.
I told Mary that when we came back she should go out as much as
possible--that the distraction of society would be good for her. She
agreed passively. We went out a great deal after that; and somehow my
wife discovered the falsehood I had told her about the reduction in my
income. She did not upbraid me, but she let me understand she knew,
with a quiet contempt that stung me to the quick. From this moment she
changed. Whilst formerly I had to urge her to mix in society, she now
appeared to seek it with an eagerness that a little surprised me.
Redvers was always with her. At any rate this made things more
comfortable for me in one way, for I could more openly go my own path.

I renewed my acquaintance with Mrs. Cantilivre. She always said the
right thing, and she understood men--at any rate she understood me. If
Mrs. Cantilivre had been my wife I would have been a success in life.
Bit by bit all my old feelings for her awoke again, and then the crash
came. It was the night of the Cavalry Ball. I asked Myra Cantilivre
for a dance; but she preferred to sit it out. I cannot tell how it
happened, but ten minutes after I was at her feet, telling her I loved
her more than my life--talking like a madman and a fool.

She bent down and kissed my forehead. "Poor boy!" she said; and as I
looked up I saw Mary on Redvers' arm not six feet from us. I rose, and
Myra Cantilivre leaned back in her chair and put up the big plumes of
her fan to her face. Mary turned away without a word, and walked down
the passage with her companion.

I followed, but dared not speak to her. Old Cramley, the Deputy
Quartermaster General, buttonholed me. He was a senior officer, and I
submitted. Half an hour later, when I escaped, my wife was gone. I
reached home at last. Mary was there, in a dark grey walking dress, a
small bag in her hand. I met her in the hall, and she stepped aside as
if my touch would pollute her.

"Mary," I said, "I can explain all."

"I want no explanation: let me pass, please."

She went out into the night.

In two days all Simla knew of it, and in six months I was a ruined
man.


There is no help for it--the verdict is against me; and yet for five
years I have been through the fire, and I am strong now--there would
be no blacksliding if another chance were given to me. Regrets! There
is no use regretting--ten times would I give my life to live over the
past again. "Mary, my dear, I have killed you: may God forgive me!"

Some one stepped out of the shadow into the moonlight as I raised my
head with the bitter cry on my lips.

"Dick!"

"Mary!"

And we had met once more.





                         THE MADNESS OF SHERE
                               BAHADUR


The mahout's small son, engaged with an equally small friend in the
pleasant occupation of stringing into garlands the thick yellow and
white champac blossoms that strewed the ground under the broad-leaved
tree near the lentena hedge, was startled by an angry trumpet, and
looked in the direction of Shere Bahadur.

"He is _must_," said one to the other, in an awe-struck whisper, and
then, a sudden terror seizing them, they bounded silently and swiftly
like little brown apes into a gap in the hedge and vanished.

There were ten thousand evil desires hissing in Shere Bahadur's heart
as he swayed to and fro under the huge peepul tree to which he was
chained. Indignity upon indignity had been heaped upon him. It was a
mere accident that Aladin, the mahout who had attended him for twenty
years, was dead. How on earth was Shere Bahadur to know that his skull
was so thin? He had merely tapped it with his trunk in a moment of
petulance, and the head of Aladin had crackled in like the shell of an
egg. Shere Bahadur was reduced to the ranks. For weeks he had to carry
the fodder supply of the Maharaj's stables, like an ordinary beast of
burden and a low-caste slave; a fool to boot had been put to attend on
him. It was not to be borne. Shere Bahadur clanked his chains angrily,
and ever and anon flung wisps of straw, twigs, and dust on his broad
back and mottled forehead. He, a Kemeriah of Kemeriahs, to be treated
thus! He was no longer the stately beast that bore the yellow and
silver howdah of the Maharaj Adhiraj in solemn procession, who put
aside with a gentle sweep of his trunk the children who crowded the
narrow streets of Kalesar. No, it was different now. He was a felon
and an outcast, bound like a thief. Something had given way in his
brain, and Shere Bahadur was mad. The flies hovered on the sore part
over his left ear, where the long peak of the driving-iron had
burrowed in, and, with a trumpet of rage, the elephant blew a cloud of
dust into the air and strained himself backwards.

_Click_! _click!_ The cast-iron links of the big chain that bound
him snapped, and Shere Bahadur was free. He cautiously moved his
pillar-like legs backwards and forwards to satisfy himself of the
fact, and then, with the broad fans of his ears spread out, stood for
a moment still as a stone. High up amongst the leaves the green
pigeons whistled softly to each other, and a grey squirrel was engaged
in hot dispute with a blue jay over treasure-trove, found in a hollow
of one of the long branches that, python-like, twined and twisted
overhead. Far away, rose tier upon tier of purple hills, and beyond
them a white line of snow-capped peaks stood out against the sapphire
of the sky. Hathni Khund was there, the deep pool of the Jumna, where
thirty years before Shere Bahadur had splashed and swam. It was
there that he fought and defeated the hoary tusker of the herd, the
one-tusked giant who had bullied and tyrannized over his tribe for
time beyond Shere Bahadur's memory.

Perhaps a thought of that big fight stirred him, perhaps the breeze
brought him the sweet scent of the young grass in the glens. At any
rate, with a quick, impatient flap of his ears, Shere Bahadur turned
and faced the hills. As he did so his twinkling red eyes caught sight
of the Kalesar state troops on their parade ground, barely a quarter
of a mile from where he stood. The fat little Maharaj was there,
standing near the saluting point. Close to him was the Vizier, with
the court, and, last but not least, a knowing little fox-terrier dug
up the earth with his forepaws, scattering it about regardless of the
august presence.

The Maharaj was proud of his troops. He had raised them himself in an
outburst of loyalty, the day after a birthday gazette in which His
Highness Sri Ranabir Pertab Sing, Maharaj Adhiraj of Kalesar, had been
admitted a companion of an exalted order. The Star of India glittered
on the podgy little prince. He was dreaming of a glorious day when he,
he himself, would lead the victorious levy through the Khyber, first
in the field against the Russ, when a murmur that swelled to a cry of
fear rose from the ranks, and the troops melted away before their
king. Rifles and accoutrements were flung aside; there was a wild
stampede, and the gorgeously attired colonel, putting spurs to his
horse, mingled with the dust and was lost to view. The Maharaj stormed
in his native tongue, and then burst into English oaths. He had a very
pretty vocabulary, for had he not been brought up under the tender
care of the Sirkar? He turned in his fury towards the Vizier, but was
only in time to see the snowy robes of that high functionary
disappearing into a culvert, and the confused mob of his court running
helter-skelter across the sward. But yet another object caught the
prince's eye, and chilled him with horror. It was the vast bulk of
Shere Bahadur moving rapidly and noiselessly towards him. Sri Ranabir
was a Rajpoot of the bluest blood, and his heart was big: but this
awful sight, this swift, silent advance of hideous death, paralyzed
him with fear. Already the long shadow of the elephant had moved near
his feet, already he seemed impaled on those cruel white tusks, when
there was a snapping bark, and the fox-terrier flew at Shere Bahadur
and danced round him in a tempest of rage. The elephant turned, and
made a savage dash at the dog, who skipped nimbly between his legs and
renewed the assault in the rear. But this moment of reprieve roused
His Highness. The prince became a man, and the Maharaj turned and
fled, darting like a star across the soft green. Shere Bahadur saw the
flash of the jewelled aigrette, the sheen of the order, and, giving up
the dog, curled his trunk and started in pursuit. It was a desperate
race. The Maharaj was out of training, but the time he made was
wonderful, and the diamond buckles on his shoes formed a streak of
light as he fled. But, fast as he ran, the race would have ended in a
few seconds if it were not for Bully, the little white fox-terrier.
Bully thoroughly grasped the situation, and acted accordingly. He ran
round the elephant, now skipping between his legs, the next moment
snapping at him behind--and Bully had a remarkably fine set of teeth.
The Maharaj sighted a small hut, the door of which stood invitingly
open. It was a poor hut made of grass and sticks, but it seemed a
royal palace to him.

"Holy Gunputty!" he gasped. "If I could----"

But it was no time to waste words. Already the snakelike trunk of his
enemy was stretched out to fold round him, when with a desperate spurt
he reached the door, and dashed in. But Shere Bahadur was not to be
denied. He stood for a moment, and then, putting forward his forefoot,
staved in the side of the frail shelter and brought down the house.
Sri Ranabir hopped out like a rat, and it was well for him that in the
cloud of dust and thatch flying about he was unobserved, for Shere
Bahadur, now careless of Bully's assaults and certain of his man, was
diligently searching the _débris_. But he found nothing save a brass
vessel, which he savagely flung at the dog. Then he carefully stamped
on the hut, and reduced everything to chaos. In the meantime Sri
Ranabir, unconscious that the pursuit had ceased, ran on as if he was
wound up like a clock, ran until his foot slipped, and the Maharaj
Adhiraj rolled into the soft bed of a nullah, and lay there with his
eyes closed, utterly beaten, and careless whether the death he had
striven so hard to avoid came or not. Then there was a buzzing in his
ears and everything became a blank.


                          *   *   *   *   *


"Blessed be the prophet! He liveth." And the Vizier helped his fallen
master to rise, aided by the Heir Apparent, in whose heart, however,
there were thoughts far different from those which found expression on
the lips of the Nawab Juggun Jung, prime minister of Kalesar. The
sympathetic, if somewhat excited, court crowded round their king, and
a little in the distance was the whole population of Kalesar, armed
with every conceivable weapon, and keeping up their courage by beating
on tom-toms, blowing horns, and shouting until the confusion of sound
was indescribable.

"Come back to the palace, my lord. They will drive the evil one out of
him." And the Vizier waved his hand in the direction of the crowd, and
pointed to where in the distance Shere Bahadur was making slowly and
steadily for the hills. But the Maharaj Adhiraj would do no such
thing. "Ryful lao!" he roared in his vernacular; "Gimme my gun!" he
shrieked in English. There was no refusing; a double-barrelled gun was
thrust in his hands, he scrambled on the back of the first horse he
saw, and, followed by his cheering subjects and the whole court,
dashed after the elephant.

"Mirror of the Universe, destroy him not," advised the Vizier who rode
at the prince's bridle-hand. "The beast is worth eight thousand
rupees, and cannot be replaced. The treasury is almost empty, and we
will want him when the Lat Saheb comes." The Maharaj was prudent if he
was brave, and the empty treasury was a strong argument. Besides, they
were getting rather close to Shere Bahadur and outpacing the faithful
people. But he gave in slowly. "What is to be done?" he asked, taking
a pull at the reins.

"The people will drive him back," replied the Vizier, "and we will
chain him up securely. He is but _must_, and in a month or so all will
pass away."

Shere Bahadur had now reached an open plain, where he stopped, and
turning round, faced his pursuers.

"Go on, brave men!" shouted the Vizier. "A thousand rupees to him who
links the first chain on that Shaitan. Drive him back! Drive him
back!"

There is the courage of numbers, and this the people of India possess.
They gradually formed a semi-circle round Shere Bahadur, cutting off
his retreat to the hills, and attempted by shouts and the beating of
tom-toms to drive him forwards. But they kept at a safe distance, and
the elephant remained unmoved.

"Prick him forwards," roared the Vizier. "Are none of ye men?
Behold! the Light of the Universe watches your deeds! A _must_
elephant--_pah!_ What is it but an animal?"

"By your lordship's favour," answered a voice, "he is not _must_, only
angry--there is no stream from his eye. Nevertheless, I will drive him
to the lines, for I am but dust of the earth, and a thousand rupees
will make me a king." Then a red-turbaned man stepped out of the
throng. It was the low-caste cooly who had been put to attend to the
elephant on Aladin's death. He was armed with a short spear, and he
crept up to the beast on his hands and knees, and then, rising, dug
the weapon into the elephant's haunch. Shere Bahadur rapped his trunk
on the ground, gave a short quick trumpet, and, swinging round, made
for the man. He did this in a slow, deliberate manner, and actually
allowed him to gain the crowd. Then he flung up his head with a
screech and dashed forward.

_Crack_! _crack!_ went both barrels of Sri Ranabir's gun, and two
bullets whistled harmlessly through the air. The panic-striken mob
turned and fled, bearing the struggling prince in the press. The
elephant was, however, too quick, and, to his horror, Sri Ranabir saw
that he had charged home. Then Sri Ranabir also saw something that he
never forgot. Not a soul did the elephant harm, but with a dogged
persistence followed the red turban. Some bolder than the rest struck
at him with their tulwars, some tried to stab him with their spears,
and one or two matchlocks were fired at him, but to no purpose.
Through the crowd he steered straight for his prey, and the crowd
itself gave back before him in a sea of frightened faces. At last the
man himself seemed to realize Shere Bahadur's object, and it dawned
like an inspiration on the rest. They made a road for the elephant,
and he separated his quarry from the crowd. At last! He ran him down
on a ploughed field and stood over the wretch. The man lay partly on
his side, looking up at his enemy, and he put up his hand weakly and
rested it against the foreleg of the elephant, who stood motionless
above him. So still was he that a wild thought of escape must have
gone through the wretch's mind, and with the resource born of imminent
peril he gathered himself together inch by inch, and made a rush for
freedom. With an easy sweep of his trunk Shere Bahadur brought him
back into his former position, and then--the devil came out, and a
groan went up from the crowd, for Shere Bahadur had dropped on his
knees, and a moment after rose and kicked something, a mangled,
shapeless something, backwards and forwards between his feet.

"Let him be," said the Vizier, laying a restraining hand on Sri
Ranabir. "What has he killed but refuse? The Shaitan will go out of
him now."

When he had done the deed Shere Bahadur moved a few yards further and
began to cast clods of earth over himself. Then it was seen that a
small figure, with a driving-hook in its little brown hand, was making
directly for the elephant.

"Come back, you little fool!" shouted Sri Ranabir. But the boy made no
answer, and running lightly forward, stood before Shere Bahadur. He
placed the tinsel-covered cap he wore at the beast's feet, and held up
his hands in supplication. The crowd stood breathless; they could hear
nothing, but the child was evidently speaking. They saw Shere Bahadur
glare viciously at the boy as his trunk drooped forward in a straight
line. The lad again spoke, and the elephant snorted doubtfully. Then
there was no mistaking the shrill treble "Lift!" Shere Bahadur held
out his trunk in an unwilling manner. The boy seized hold of it as
high as he could reach, placed his bare feet on the curl, and murmured
something. A moment after he was seated on the elephant's neck, and
lifting the driving-iron, waved it in the air.

"Hai!" he screamed as he drove it on to the right spot, the sore part
over the left ear. "Hai! Base-born thief, back to your lines!"

And the huge bulk of Shere Bahadur turned slowly round and shambled
off to the peepul tree like a lamb.

"By the trunk of Gunputty! I will make that lad a havildar, and the
thousand rupees shall be his," swore the Maharaj.

"Pillar of the earth!" advised the Vizier, "let this unworthy one
speak. It is Futteh Din, the dead Aladin's son. Give him five rupees,
and _let him be mahout_."


                          *   *   *   *   *


When I last saw Shere Bahadur he was passing solemnly under the old
archway of the "Gate of the Hundred Winds" at Kalesar. The Maharaj
Adhiraj was seated in the howdah, with his excellency the Nawab Juggun
Jung by his side. On the driving-seat was Futteh Din, gorgeous in
cloth of gold, and they were on their way to the funeral-pyre of the
Heir Apparent, who had died suddenly from a surfeit of cream.

As they passed under the archway a sweetmeat-seller rose and bowed to
the prince, and Shere Bahadur, stretching out his trunk, helped
himself to a pound or so of Turkish Delight.

"Such," said the sweetmeat-seller to himself ruefully, as he gazed
after the retreating procession, "such are the ways of kings."





                             REGINE'S APE


It is a May morning in the north of India--such a morning as comes
when the hot wind has been blowing for three weeks, and has shrivelled
everything before it, like tea-leaves under the fan of a drying
engine. The Grand Trunk Road, a long line of grey dotted in with
dust-covered _kikur_ trees, stretches for three hundred miles to the
frontier, and to the right and left of it, beginning at the village of
the Well of Lehna Singh, which lies but a quoit-cast from the
roadside, spreads a plain, dry, arid, and parched--agape with
thirst--the seams running along its brown surface like open lips
panting for rain, the cool rain which will not come yet, although, at
times, the distant rumble of thunder is heard, and dark clouds pile up
in the horizon, only to melt away into nothing. The tall _sirpat_
grass has been cut, and its pruned stalks, stiff as the bristles on a
hair-brush, extend in regular patches of yellow, spiky scrub, with
bands of mottled brown and grey earth between them. Here and again it
would seem there are scattered pools, for the eyes, running over the
landscape, shrink back from a sudden flash, as of water reflecting the
fierce light of the sun. It is not so, however, for, except what the
groaning Persian wheels drag up from the deep wells, there is never a
drop of water for man, for beast, or for field. Those gleaming
stretches from which the pained eyes turn are nothing more than the
bare earth, covered with a saline efflorescence, soft and silver
white, as if it were dry and powdered foam. It is yet early, and the
light is not so dazzling as to prevent the eye resting on the
patchwork of the plain, studded here and there with clumps of trees,
that mark a well and the hamlet that has grown up around it. To found
a village here it is only necessary to dig a well, and behold! mud
huts spring up like fungi, and a hamlet has come into being. Right
across the plain is a dark line of _kikur_ and _seesum_ trees. That is
where the dry bed of the Deg torrents lies. Only let it rain, and the
Deg will come down, an angry yellow flood, alive with catfish, and
bubble its way to the wide but not less yellow bosom of the Ravi.
Beyond the dry bed of the torrent, and towards the east, are a number
of sand dunes covered with the soda plant, and looking like anthills
in the distance. In the east itself the sun looms through a red haze,
and against this ruddy, semi-opaque mist, a dust-devil rises in a
spiral column, and opening out at the top, like an expanding smoke
wreath, spreads sullenly against the sky line. On a morning such as
this, two men are beating for a boar in a large patch of _sirpat_
grass. One man is at each end of the grass field, and between them are
twenty or thirty _Sansis_, a criminal tribe, who make excellent
beaters whatever their other faults may be. With the man to the right
of the field we have little concern. It is with the man to the left
that this story deals. As he sits his fretting Arab, and the sunlight
falls on his features, it would need but a glance to tell he was a
soldier. The careful observer might, however, discover in that glance
that there was something wrong about the good-looking face. The eyes
were too close together, the bow of the mouth both weak and cruel,
although the chin below it was firm enough. If the grey helmet he wore
were removed, it would have been seen that the head was small and
somewhat conical in shape, the head of a Carib rather than that of an
European. As he slowly advanced his horse along the edge of the field,
keeping in line with the beaters, it was evident that he was in a high
state of excitement, and the shaft of his spear was shivering in his
hand.

_Whirr_! _whirr!_ A couple of black partridge rise from the grass and
sail away till they look like cockchafers in the distance. Then there
is a scramble, a hare dashes out, and scurries madly across the plain,
his long ears laid flat on his back, and his big eyes almost starting
out of his head with fright. The beaters yell at this, and the Arab
plunges forward; but the rider, who is growing pale with excitement,
holds him in, and he dances along sideways in a white sweat--both
horse and man all nerves. Two mangy jackals slink out of the grass,
give a sly look around, and then lope along in the direction taken by
the hare. It will be bad for puss if they come across him. As yet not
a sign of the boar, and the Arab is almost pulling Sangster's arms
off. He looks across at his friend, and sees him well to the right, on
his solemn-looking black, and he catches sight of a pale blue curl of
smoke from Wilkinson's pipe.

"By George!" he muttered, "only think of smoking now! Steady----" He
might as well have tried to stop an engine. There is a chorus of
yells, shrieks, and howls from the beaters, a sudden waving of
crackling grass, the plunge of a heavy body, and in a hand-turn an old
boar breaks cover, and, with one savage look about him, heads at a
tremendous pace for the Deg. The Arab has seen it, and lets himself
out like a buck, and then all is forgotten except the fierce
excitement of the chase. Sangster can hear the drumming of the black's
hoofs behind him, and fast as he goes Wilkinson draws alongside, his
teeth still clenched over the stem of his pipe. The boar is well to
the front, a brown spot bobbing up and down, racing for his life, as
he means to fight for it when the time comes. He is not afraid, his
little red eyes are aflame with wrath, and as he goes he grinds his
tusks till the yellow foam flies off them on to his brindled sides. He
is not in the least afraid, and he fully intends, at the proper time,
to adjust matters with one or both his pursuers. It is his way to run
first and fight afterwards--that is, providing the enemy can run him
to a standstill. If not--well, the fight must be deferred to another
day, and in the meantime it is capital going, except over that
ravine-scarred portion of the plain called the "Gridiron," where, at
any rate, the advantage will lie with him.

Side by side the two men race. Wilkinson knows perfectly well that
when the time comes he can draw away from the Arab, which, with all
its speed and pluck, is no match for a fifteen-hand Waler. He is
calculating on gaining "first spear" with a sudden rush; but has
missed out of this calculation the consequences of an accident. In the
middle of the "Gridiron," the Waler makes a false step between two
grass-crowned hummocks, and Sangster is left alone, with the boar,
whilst Wilkinson, with a sore heart, crawls out of a water-cut, and,
after many an ineffectual effort, succeeds in catching his horse and
following the chase, now almost out of sight.

In the meantime the boar has all but reached the Deg, and safety lies
there. Could he only gain one of the hundred ravines that cobweb the
plain, a quarter mile or so from the dry bed of the torrent, he would
yet live to run, and maybe fight, on another day. He strains every
nerve to effect this object, and Sangster, seeing this, calls on his
horse, and the Arab, answering gallantly, brings him almost up to the
boar with a rush. Sangster can see the foam on the boar's jowl, necked
with bright spots of red; blood-marks from the hunted animal's lips,
wounded by the sharp tushes as he ground them together in his wrath;
already has he reached out his arm to deliver the spear, when, quick
as lightning, the boar jinks to the right, and, dashing down a deep
and narrow ravine, is lost to view. Sangster saw the bristles on his
back as the beast vanished, and the speed of his horse bore him almost
to the edge of the steep bank of the Deg before he could stop and turn
him. When Sangster came back to the point where he had lost the boar
he realized that it was useless to make any attempt to find the
animal. In a hasty look round he had given when Wilkinson came to
grief he had seen that the accident to his friend was not serious, and
he now resolved to cross the Deg by an old bridge known as "Shah
Doula's Pool," and make his way back to the beaters along the "soft"
that bordered the metalling of the Grand Trunk Road. It would be shady
there, and he was parched with thirst, and very much out of temper.
Failure in anything made this nervous man extraordinarily irritable,
and he was in a mood to pick a quarrel on the slightest provocation.

Sangster reached the bridge in this frame of mind, and as he crossed
it came upon a curious scene. Under the shade of a peepul, whose
heart-shaped leaves sheltered him from the sun, sat a devotee staring
fixedly into space with his lustreless eyes. Beyond a cloth around his
waist he had no clothing, his body was smeared with ashes, and on his
ash-covered forehead was drawn a trident in red ochre. His hair, which
was of great length, and had been bleached by exposure from black to a
russet brown, fell over his thin shoulders in a long matted mane.
Sitting there, he was, up to this point, like any one of the hundred
wandering mendicants a man might meet in a week's march in India; but
here the resemblance ceased, for this man was of those who, in the
fulfilment of a vow, was prepared to inflict upon himself and to
endure any torture. He sat cross-legged, and what at first Sangster
thought was the dry and blasted bough of a stunted _kikur_ tree behind
the man he saw, at a second glance, was nothing less than the
devotee's arm, which he had held out at a right angle to his body,
until it had stiffened immovably in that position, and had shrunk
until it seemed that the cracked skin alone covered the bone. How long
the arm had been held to reach this condition no one can say. But it
was long enough for the nails to have grown through the palm of the
clenched hand, over which they curled and drooped like tendrils. The
ascetic's gourd lay before him, into which some pious passer-by had
dropped a handful of parched rice, and behind him gambolled a grey
monkey, an entellus or _lungoor_, who gibbered and mowed at Sangster
as he rode up, but made no attempt to retreat--evidently he was tame,
and used to people.

Although Sangster had nearly seven years of service, he knew nothing
about the East; his knowledge of its peoples and their characters
expressed itself in two words, brief and strong. He knew nothing and
cared less for the complex laws, the mystic philosophy, the immemorial
civilization of the great empire which he, in his small way, was
helping to hold for England. He fortunately represented only a small
class of the servants of the Queen, that class who hold the native to
be a brute, a little, if at all, better than the grey ape who leered
over the devotee's shoulder at the Arab and his rider. Sangster,
however, knew something of the language, and some devil prompted him
to rein in, and imperiously ask the sitting figure if the boar had
gone that way. He might as well have asked the ape, for that figure,
seated there in the dust, with its rigid arm stretched out, and dull
look staring into vacancy, would have been oblivious if a hundred
boars had passed before it, and was so lost in abstraction that it was
even unconscious of the presence of the fiery champing horse and
equally impatient man, who were right in front of its unwinking eyes.
Of course there was no answer, and Sangster angrily repeated the
question, lowering the point of his spear as he did so, and slightly
pricking the man below him. What came into the little brain of the ape
it is hard to say; but it was an instinct that told him his master was
in danger, and with a dog-like fidelity he resolved to defend him.
Springing forward the beast grasped the shaft of the lance, and, with
chattering teeth, pushed it violently on one side. All the little
temper Sangster had left went to shreds; with an oath he drew back his
arm, the spear-head flashed, and the next moment passed clean through
the shrieking animal, and was out again, no longer bright but dripping
red. With a pitiful moan the poor brute almost flung itself into the
devotee's lap, and died there, its arms clasped around the lean waist
of its master. All this happened so suddenly, so quickly, that
Sangster had barely time to think of what he had done; but, as he
raised his red spear, a horror came on him, so human was the cry of
the dying ape, so like a child did it lie in its death-agony. He would
have turned away and ridden off, but a power he could not control kept
him there, and for a space there was a silence, broken only by the
drip from the spear-head, and the soft whistle of a _huryal_ or green
pigeon from the shade of the leaves overhead.

The ascetic gently put aside the dead ape, and rose, a grey phantom,
to his feet. So large was his head, so small his body, and so long the
withered bird-like legs that supported him, that he appeared to be
some uncanny creature of another world. He was overcome with a
terrible excitement, his breast heaved, his lips moved with a hissing
sound, and he unconsciously tried to shake his rigid right arm at the
destroyer. Then his voice came, shrill and fierce, with a note of
unending pain in it, and he dropped out slowly, and with a deadly hate
in each word: "_Cursed be the hand that wrought this deed! Cursed be
thou above thy fellows! May Durga dog thee through life, and let thy
life itself end in blood! Now go_!"

Without a word Sangster turned to the left, and galloped along the
banks of the Deg. At any other time he could have found it in his
heart to laugh at the curse of the mad ascetic, for so he thought the
man to be; but the limp body of the dead ape was before him, and its
pitiful cry was ringing in his ears. As he rode on he caught a glimpse
of his dull spear-point. It was only the blood of an animal after all;
but he flung the lance away with a jerk of his arm, and it fell softly
into the broad-leaved _dakh_ shrubs and lay there, long and yellow in
the sunlight. He pressed on madly; the white line of the Grand Trunk
Road was now close, and he could make out a gigantic figure on a
gigantic horse. It was Wilkinson; but how huge he looked! Sangster's
head seemed bursting, and there was a drumming in his ears. Somehow he
managed to keep his seat, and at last heard Wilkinson's cool voice.

"Got the pig, old man? Good God!----" For Sangster, with a flushed red
face, slid from his saddle, and lay senseless in the white burning
dust.

In a moment Wilkinson had sprung to earth and was bending over his
friend.

"Sunstroke, by Jove! Must get him back at once."


                          *   *   *   *   *


One does not recover from sunstroke in a little, and in most cases it
leaves a permanent mark behind it. Sangster was no exception to the
rule. For weeks he lay between life and death. There were times when
he tottered on the brink of that dark precipice, down which we must
all go sooner or later; but he rallied at last. Finally he was well
enough to travel, and the sick man came home. He had never mentioned
to a soul what he had done at Shah Doula's Pool. If he had spoken of
it during his illness, it was doubtless set down to the ravings of
delirium. When at length he recovered his senses, he could only recall
what had happened to him in a vague manner. But he was no longer his
own cheery, somewhat noisy self. He was listless, moody, and
apathetic. Over his mind there seemed to brood a shadow that would
take to itself neither form nor substance, and against which he could
not battle. The doctors said the long sea-voyage home would set him
right in this respect. They were wrong, and day after day the man lay
stretched on his cane deck-chair, or paced up and down in sullen
silence, exchanging no word with his fellow-passengers. At last they
reached Plymouth, and although it was seven years since he had left
England, he never even glanced out of the windows as the train bore
him to his Berkshire home. He arrived at last and was made much over.
Kind hands tended him, and loving hearts were there to anticipate his
slightest whim. It was impossible to resist this, and in a little time
the clouds seemed to roll away from his mind, and he was once more gay
and bright. One warm sunny day, as he was lying in a hammock under the
shade of a sycamore, hardly conscious that he was awake, and yet
knowing he was not asleep, his mind seemed to slip back of its own
accord into the past. In an instant the soft turf, the mellow green
trees, the restful English landscape faded away. A wind that was as
hot as a furnace blast beat upon him. All around was a dreary waste,
and above, the sky was a cloudless, burning blue. He was once again
holding in his fiery Arab, and listening to the curse hissing out from
the lips of the devotee. He almost heard the blood dropping from his
spear on to the grey dust below his horse's hoofs, and from the
heart-shaped _peepul_ leaves--it was no longer a sycamore he was
beneath--the whistle of the green pigeon came to him soft and low. A
strange terror seized him. He sprang out of the hammock. He had not
been asleep. It was broad daylight, and yet he could have sworn that
for the moment time had rolled backwards, and that he was eight
thousand miles away from the square, red brick parsonage, in the
firwoods of Berkshire. And then he began to understand.

He went into the house his old brooding self, and in a week, finding
life there insupportable, ran up to town. Here he took chambers close
to his club, and plunged into dissipation. He was not naturally a man
given that way, and he did not take to it kindly. But he held his
course and broke the remains of his health, and wasted his substance
in a vain effort to shake off the weight from his soul. But it was
useless, and now a weariness of life fell upon him, and something
seemed to be ever whispered in his ear to end all. The temptation came
upon him one evening with an almost irresistible force. He was to dine
out that evening, and had just finished dressing when his eye fell on
a small plated Derringer that lay on the table before him. He took it
up and held it in his hand. But a little touch on the trigger, and
there would be an end of all things. It was so easy. Only a little
touch! He placed the round muzzle to his temple, and stood thus for a
second. He could hear the ticking of his watch, he could feel the
pulse in his temple throbbing against the cold steel of the pistol, he
could feel his very heart beating. His whole past rose up before him.
He closed his eyes, set his teeth, his finger was on the trigger, when
he heard a low laugh, a mocking laugh of triumph, that, soft as it
was, seemed to vibrate through the room. Sangster's hand dropped to
his side, and he looked round with a scared face. At the time this
occurred he was standing at his dressing-table, and the only light was
that from two candles, one on each side of the glass. The bedroom was
separated from the sitting-room by a folding door, overhung by a heavy
crimson curtain, and this part of the room was in semidarkness. As
Sangster turned his white face to the curtain he saw nothing, although
the laugh was still ringing in his ears; but, as he looked, a pale
blue mist rose before the curtain; a mist that seemed instinct with
light, and in it floated the body of the devotee, the rigid arm
extended towards him and a smile of infernal malice on the withered
lips. For a moment Sangster stood as if spell-bound--a cold sweat on
his forehead. Then, for he was no coward, he nerved himself, and
advanced towards the vision. As he stepped up, mist and figure faded
into nothing, and he was alone. But he could bear to be so no longer,
and thrusting the pistol into the breast pocket of his coat, hurried
outside. Once in the street, he hailed a hansom and was driven to his
destination.

During his stay in town he had sought every class of society, and
chance had thrown him in the way of Madame Régine. Who she was is not
material to this story, but she was the one person he had met who
could for the moment make Sangster forget his gloom.

In her way, too, Régine was attracted by this man, so grave and
silent, yet who was able to speak of things and scenes she had never
heard of, and who looked so different from the other men she came
across in her literary and artistic circle.

Of late, with a perversity which cannot be accounted for, he had
avoided seeing her, and she was more than glad he was coming that
night; and as for him, he almost had it in his heart to thank God he
was to see Régine that evening.

Madame knew how to select her guests. There were but half a dozen
people, and it was very gay. At first Sangster could not shake off his
depression, but as the wine went round and the wit sparkled he pulled
himself together, and in a half-hour had forgotten what had happened
before he came to the house. They were late that evening; but the time
came to go at last. Sangster, however, lingered--the latest of all to
say good-bye.

As he went up to her she put aside his hand with a smile.

"I have not seen you for ages. You might stay for another ten minutes
and talk to me."

"I shall be delighted."

"That is nice of you--and I will show you a present I have had from
India. You can smoke if you like."

"I suppose it is little things like this that you do that make you so
charming a hostess."

"Thank you," she laughed, a pink flush in her cheeks, "and now wait a
moment and I will give you a surprise."

And Sangster heard the same sneering laugh that he had heard in his
rooms. It came from nowhere; but it chilled him to ice, and the answer
in his lips died to nothing. He alone heard it, loud as it was, for
Madame looked for a moment at him as she spoke and then there was a
swish of trailing garments, and she was gone. A little time passed,
and Sangster thought he would smoke. In an absent manner he put his
hand in his breast pocket and pulled out--not his cigarette case, but
the pistol. He smiled grimly to himself as he held it in his hand.

"Might as well do it here as anywhere else," he muttered.

On the instant he felt two soft furry arms round his neck, and
something sprang lightly to his shoulders. He gave a quick cry and
looked up to meet the grinning face of an entellus monkey leering into
his eyes.

"My God!" he gasped, and the sharp report of the Derringer cut into
Régine's peal of laughter, and changed its note to a scream of horror.
When the police came she was bending over the body of the madman,
laughing in shrill hysterics, and the ape gibbered at them from his
seat on the high back of a chair.





                         A SHADOW OF THE PAST


The sunbirds, hovering and twittering over the _neem_ trees, signalled
to me the approach of the coming hot weather. The sky was a steel
grey, and over the horizon of the wide plain before my bungalow, on
which the short grass was already dry and crisp, hung a curtain of
pale brown dust. Here and there on the expanse of faded green were
small herds of lean kine, and, almost on the edge of the road
bordering the plain, a line of water-buffaloes sluggishly headed for a
shallow pool about a mile or so westward, where they would wallow till
the sun went down, and then be driven home with unwilling steps to
their byres. The herd bull came last of all, and on his back sat a
little naked boy, a pellet bow in his hand, and a cotton bag full of
mud pellets slung over his shoulder. He was singing in a high-pitched
tuneless voice, and his song seemed to enrage the "brain-fever" bird
in the mango tree, where he had hidden silent since the dawn. The bird
objected in a shrill crescendo of ringing notes that brought the
pellet bow into play, and then there was a whistle of grey-brown wings
as he flew to a safer spot, and a silence broken only by the
monotonous _tink_, _tink_, _tink_ of the little green barbet or
coppersmith. There were times, when fever held me in its grip, that
the maddening iteration of its cry was almost unbearable, and to this
day I nurse a hatred to that little green-coated and red-throated
plague--of a truth "the coppersmith hath done me much evil." I stood
in my veranda watching the retreating figure of the Judge, as he drove
away full of a project of spending a month in Burma--an enterprise he
had been vainly tempting me to share; but I had other fish to fry: my
way was westwards, not eastwards, and besides I had slaved for six
long years in Burma, and knew it far too well. One glance at the Judge
as he turned the elbow of the road, and was lost to view behind the
siris trees, one look at the thirsty plain, and the shivering heat
haze, through which glinted, now and again, the distant spear-heads of
a squadron of Bengal Lancers trotting slowly back to their barracks,
and I turned in to my study. I had determined to devote the day to the
destruction of old papers, and set about my task in earnest. There was
one drawer in particular that had not been touched for three years. I
had forgotten what it contained, and opened it slowly, thinking it was
possibly an Augean Stable; but nothing met my eyes except a small
packet of papers. Yet with that one look came back to me the memory of
a life's tragedy. The papers should have been destroyed long ago, and
now--I hesitated no longer, but tore them up into the smallest
fragments, glad to be rid, as I thought, of the miserable record of a
man's folly, of his crime, and of his shame.

But an awakened memory is not easily set at rest, and, in the
stillness of that Indian day, the whole thing returned with an
insistent force, dead voices spoke to me once more, and bitter regrets
hummed of the past, the past that can never be retrodden--and then
there arose out of the shadows in vivid distinctness the memory of
that supreme moment when John Mazarion cast his soul to hell. It all
came back like a picture: that lonely Himalayan mountain side, the
black pines, the silent eternal snows, Mazarion with his pale white
face, and Rani with her laughing eyes. An eagle screamed above us, I
remember, and with a hissing of wings dropped over the abyss into the
blue mists that clung to the mountain side.

John Mazarion and I had been friends at school, and we met again as
young men with a common interest in our lives, for we had both adopted
an Indian career. Mazarion had gone into the Indian Marine, and I--I
wanted in those days to build empires as did Clive and Hastings, and
so I sought honour in another service, and got sent to Burma for my
pains and--the empires have yet to be built. There was yet another
interest between John and myself, and that was Nelly. Being young men
we did as young men do, and both fell in love; but unfortunately we
both fell in love with the same woman, and Nelly took Mazarion. It was
a bitter thing for me then; but now that I have come to an age when I
can argue with myself, I can see it was but natural. John was a big
handsome man with fair hair and limpid blue eyes, and Nelly--well, a
man does not care to write about the woman he loves; she was Nelly and
that is enough. Though I never spoke of it, I fancy Nelly must have
known I loved her, for in that tender womanly way which good women
alone have she gave me strength to endure, and for her sake I wished
Mazarion good luck, and sailed for the East. John followed in a few
weeks, and I understood they were to be married in three years, when
Mazarion got his step--a long engagement; but the purse of an Indian
officer is mostly a lean one, and Nelly's people were not rich. Well,
as I said before, I began my Eastern career in Burma, and Mazarion's
duties led him to the Bay of Bengal and to the Burman waters. We never
met for close on four years; but occasionally I came to Rangoon, the
capital of Burma, and there I heard much of him, and always in
connection with some story of stupid folly. The best of men would
shrink from daylight being thrown on all their actions; but what would
have been wrong in any man's case became doubly so, and doubly
dishonourable, in the case of John Mazarion--at least I thought and
think so, for Nelly's face used to rise before me with a look of
patient waiting in the sweet eyes.

At last we met in the club at Rangoon and lunched together. He
incidentally let out that he had got his step in promotion nearly a
year ago, and went on to answer the unspoken question in my look.

"Nelly will have to wait a year or so more, I'm afraid--I'm deuced
hard up. But I suppose you're in the same street. Come and have a
smoke."

I was not in the same street; but I went and had a smoke. We talked of
many things, and when I left I knew that John had slipped down, but
how far down I was yet to know. Before I left the club I accepted an
invitation to supper with him in his rooms; he had received a port
appointment, and was for the present stationed in Rangoon. I went to
that supper. There were two or three others there, and a lady--God
save the mark!--who did the honours of the house. I could have struck
Mazarion where he sat brazening the whole thing out; but I held myself
in somehow and saw it through. I was the first to go, and Mazarion
followed me to the door--shame was not quite dead in him. "Look here,
old man," he said, "you're off home, I know, and will see Nelly. You
needn't--and--you know what I mean--" holding out his hand.

I drew back. "Yes, I know what you mean, and I will keep silent. But I
would to God I hadn't accepted your cursed hospitality!"

And I turned and walked down the stairway, leaving him on the landing,
white with rage. In a month from that day I was in England, and a week
later I had seen Nelly. I well remember it was with a beating heart
that I came to the door of the suburban villa with the May tree in
bloom near the gate, and in a minute or so was in the little
drawing-room I knew so well. In the place of honour was a large
photograph of Mazarion in his naval uniform, and near it was a vase
with a votive offering of fresh flowers. I felt who had placed them
there, and swore bitterly under my breath. Then the door opened and
Nelly came in with outstretched bands.

"I'm so glad to see you, Mr. Thring, after all these years."

"And it seems to me as if I had never been away. I shook off the East
with the first grey sky I saw."

Then we sat and talked, but I carefully avoided the subject of
Mazarion, and now and again parried a leading question because I did
not know what to say, and felt miserable when I saw the eager light in
Nelly's eyes fade into a look of disappointment. Finally Mrs.
Carstairs, Nelly's mother, came in, and it was a relief, for I had to
go over my experiences again. But I struck on the rocks at last when
Mrs. Carstairs said: "Well, I suppose you are lucky in getting back in
four years--though that does seem such a long time."

"Yes, I suppose I am, Mrs. Carstairs. There are men who have been away
ten years and more, and whose prospects of seeing home again are still
far."

I thought I heard the faintest echo of a sigh, and grew hot all over.
My hand shook so that I could hear the teacup I held rattle on the
saucer. I was a tactless fool.

"How hard!" said Mrs. Carstairs, "and there is poor John still out
there, waiting for his step. I wonder when he will get it and be able
to come home."

I looked at Nelly. Her eyes were ablaze and her cheeks flushed, and
the words "waiting for his step" rang in my ears. Mazarion had got his
step a year ago--he had told me so himself. I could say nothing.

"I suppose you have seen John," Mrs. Carstairs went on. "You and he
used to be such friends. When did you last meet?"

"About six weeks ago, in Rangoon; he was looking very well."

"I am so glad. We--that is, Nelly has not heard for nearly two months,
and when he last wrote he said he was very busy, and likely to go on a
long cruise."

Now I knew Mazarion had held that port appointment for nearly six
months, and would hold it for a year or so to come without any
likelihood of going on a cruise, and I of course knew that he was
lying--lying to the dear heart that loved him so well. To this day I
know not whether I did right or wrong in holding my tongue, in saying
nothing, and when I left them I left them still in that fool's
paradise of trust and love and hope. I saw them once again before I
left. I could not go back without one more look at Nelly. As I said
good-bye she timidly slipped a small packet into my hands, and I
promised it would reach John Mazarion in safety.

On the voyage back I thought of many things, and reproached myself for
having parted with Mazarion as I had. For her sake I should have made
some effort to pull him right, and as it were I had simply kicked him
down a step lower, for I had made him feel his infamy, and that is not
the way to help a man to recover his own self-respect. I had been
hasty--for the moment my temper had got the better of me--with the
usual result. And so I determined not to send him Nelly's gift, but,
on reaching Rangoon, to deliver the packet with my own hands.

I found him in his office on the river face, and, as I expected, there
was a coldness and constraint in his manner. Our eyes met--his still
with anger in them--and then he dropped his look.

"I have brought this," I said, "from Miss Carstairs. I promised it
should reach you safely."

He took the packet from me in silence, but I saw his hands shake and
the crow's-feet gather about his eyes. He fumbled with the seals, then
let the packet drop on the table, and looked at me again as I blurted
out: "I have said nothing--not a word."

"I do not understand, sir."

"John Mazarion," I cut in, "you are still to her what you have ever
been. Man! you know not what you are throwing away. See here, John!
You are my oldest friend, and I can't let you go like this. Pull up
and turn round; give yourself a chance. If--if money is wanted--well,
I've saved a bit----"

He simply leaned back in his chair and laughed. And such a laugh!
There was not a ring of mirth in it--a tuneless, mocking laugh such as
might come from the throat of a devil. Then he stopped and looked at
me, the hard lines still in the corners of his mouth and round his
eyes.

"Thring, you're a meddlesome fool! Take my advice and let each man
stir his own porridge. I want no interference and none of your damned
advice. I mean to live my own life."

"It isn't of you alone I am thinking."

He fairly shook with rage. "Go!" he burst out. "Go! I hate the sight
of you, with your lips full of talk about duty and self-respect and
honour. Go!"

I left the man, but for all his violence I felt that his anger was
really against himself, and that my words had gone home.

A year, two years passed. Three times in this interval I had
heard from Nelly, and on each occasion the letter was not so much
for me as to obtain news of Mazarion. She was still watching and
waiting--wasting the treasures of her heart as many another woman has
done on men as worthless as Mazarion. And I--I was powerless to help
her for whom I would have given my life. Twice I had answered to say
that I had no news to give; but on the third occasion it was on the
heels of her letter that news reached me. It came from the commander
of a river steamer who dined with me in my lonely district house on
the banks of the Irawadi.

"The man has practically gone to the devil," said Jarman in his blunt
outspoken way; "he got a touch of the sun about a year ago."

"I never heard of that."

"I'm not surprised at that; it's a wonder you hear anything in this
doggone hole. Well, when Mazarion came round again the pace was faster
than ever. I can't help thinking that his brain never really righted
itself; but he acted like a fool, and a madman, and a blackguard
combined--with the usual result."

"You don't mean to say he's broken!"

"About as good as broke. Government is long-suffering, but in common
decency they couldn't overlook the things Mazarion did. They've given
him a chance, however. He's had six months' sick leave to settle his
affairs, and he's cleared off to some hill station or other in India."

So it had come to this. And late that night I took the bull by the
horns and wrote to Mrs. Carstairs, telling her exactly how things
were, and in the morning my heart failed me and I tore up that letter
and wrote another one to Nelly, in which all that I said of Mazarion
was that he had gone on leave to the Indian hills; and this letter I
posted.

I little knew how near the time was when I should go myself. My tour
of service in Burma was coming to an end, and that end was hastened by
the rice-swamps of Henzada. A medical certificate did the rest, and
within the month I was ordered to India, and, best of good luck, to a
Himalayan station. In a fortnight I was out of Burma--in India--in the
Himalayas.

How I enjoyed that journey from the plains! How strength seemed to
come back by leaps and bounds as we rushed through the belt of
forest that girdled the mountains, past savannahs of waving yellow
tiger-grass, through purple-blossomed ironwood and lilac jerrol,
through stretches of bamboo jungle in every shade of colour, with
their graceful tufts of culms a hundred feet and more from the ground,
through giant sal and toon woods whose sombre foliage was lightened by
the orange petals of the palas, and the blazing crimson bloom of the
wax-like flowers of the silk cotton! Higher still, and the tropical
forest is now but a hazy green sea that quivers uneasily below. Now
the hedgerows are bright with dog-roses, and the shade is the shade of
oak and birch and maple. In the long restful arcades of the forest, by
the edges of the trickling mountain springs, the sward is gay with
amaranth and marguerite, the pimpernel winks its blue eyes from
beneath its shelter of tender green, and a hundred other nameless
woodland flowers spangle the glades. Higher still and the whole wonder
of the Himalayas is around me, one rolling mass of green, purple, and
azure mountains, with a horizon of snow-clad peaks standing white and
pure against the perfect blue of the sky.

There was a window at the club which used to be my favourite seat, for
it commanded a matchless view, and it was here that I used to sit and
positively drink in strength with every puff of fresh, pure air that
came in past the roses clustering on the trelliswork outside. A friend
joined me--one who like myself had escaped to the hills after wrecking
his health in a Burman swamp. He had known Mazarion, and somehow the
conversation turned upon him, and Paget asked me to step with him into
the hall. Once there he pointed to a small board which I had noticed
before, but never had the curiosity to examine. On that board was
posted the name of John Mazarion as a defaulter.

"He has gone under utterly," said Paget as we regained our seats, "for
this is not all that has happened."

"Could anything be worse?"

"Well, I rather think so. Do you know the man has flung away all shame
and has gone to live like a beastly Bhootea--a hill man--a savage on
the mountain side?"

"What!"

"Why, every one knows it here. It happened about three months
ago--just after that affair," and he indicated the board in the hall
with a turn of his hand.

"The man must be mad."

"Not he; only he hasn't pluck enough to blow his brains out. He's not
alone either, but has taken a wife--a Bhootea woman. They're not far
off from here--over there on that spur," and he pointed to a wooded
arm of the mountains that stood out above a grey rolling mist.

"My God!" and I put my head between my hands. "The cad! the worthless
brute!" I burst out. "See here, Paget: perhaps you're wrong--perhaps
this story isn't true?"

Paget carefully dusted a speck from his coat-sleeve.

"I know what you're thinking of, Thring. That girl at home. I heard
something about the affair. I used to feel inclined to kick him when I
saw her picture in his rooms at Rangoon beside that of the other
one--you know whom I mean. Yes, it's all true, and you can go and see
if you like. The Boothea girl is called Rani; she's devilish pretty.
It's the 'squalid savage' business, you know; but the man is a moral
hog--damn him!"

Saying this, Paget, who was a good fellow after his kind, lit another
cigar, and nodding his head in farewell went off to the billiard-room,
and I sat still--thinking, thinking, with fury and shame in my heart.
At last I could endure it no longer, and then suddenly rose and walked
to my rooms--I lived in the club. I was hardly conscious of what I
did, but I remember ordering my pony, and then my eyes fell on a case
containing a small pair of dainty revolvers. I took them mechanically
from their velvet-lined beds, loaded them carefully, and slipped them
in a courier-bag. Then I mounted the pony and rode off to find
Mazarion. The road was longer than I thought; but it seemed as if some
instinct guided me--some power, I know not what, was over me, and led
my steps straight to my goal.

It is curious how in moments like this unimportant and trivial
incidents impress themselves on the mind. I remember tying the pony to
a white rhododendron, and that in so doing I dropped my cigar. It was
the only one I had, and it lay smouldering before me, crosswise on the
petals of one of the huge lemon-scented flowers that had fallen from
the tree. I kicked it from me, and then went onwards on foot. In about
half an hour I came to a little tableland of greensward, which hung
over a grey abyss. Huge black pines rose stiffly on the rocks that
beetled over the level turf, and to the edge of the rocks there clung,
like a wasp's nest, a wretched hut, with a thin blue smoke rising from
between the rafters of its moss-grown roof.

It was touching sunset, and the west was a blaze of crimson and gold.
The face of the pine-covered crag towering above me was in black
shadow; but the mellow light was bright on the green turf at my feet.
It cast a ruddy glow over the withered trunk of a huge fallen pine
that lay athwart the open, and then fell in long rainbow-hued shafts
on the uneasy mists that filled the valley, and stole up the mountain
side in soft-rolling billows of purple, of grey, and of silver-white.
The pine trunk was not ten paces from me, and walking up to it I took
out the pistols from the courier-bag and placed them on the rough
bark, and from their resting-place the polished barrels glinted
brightly in the evening light. I knew I was near my man, and if ever
there was an excuse for doing what I meant to do, I had that defence.
As I stood there, one hand on the tree trunk and still as a stone, a
red tragopan crept out from the yellow-berried bramble at the edge of
the steep. For a moment we looked at one another, and then he dropped
his blue-wattled head an was off like a flash, and at the same instant
there was a scream and a rush of wings, as a homing eagle dropped like
a falling stone over the pines, and whizzing past me was lost to view.
I walked to the edge of the precipice over which he had flown to his
eyrie on the face of the cliffs below; I could see nothing but that
heaving swell of billows, and now some one laughed--a sweet, melodious
laugh like the tinkling of a silver bell. I turned sharply, and Rani
stood before me. It could be none other than she. Bhootea, savage,
Mongol--whatever she was, she was of those whom God had dowered with
beauty, and she stood before me a lithe, supple elf of the woods. The
rounded outlines of her form were clear through the single garment she
wore, clasped by an embroidered zone at the waist, and holding forth a
pitcher with a shapely arm, she offered me some spring water to drink.
I shook my head, and she laughed again like the song of a bird, and
asked in English, speaking slowly:

"You want--my--man?"

Before I could answer, the door of the hut opened and Mazarion and I
had met again.

"You--you!" and he paled beneath his sunburnt cheeks.

"Even I." And we stared at each other, my temples throbbing and my
hands clenched. He was dressed as a native of the hills, in a long
loose gabardine, with a cloth wound round his waist. His fair hair
hung in an unkempt tangle to his neck, and he had a beard of many
weeks' growth. All the beauty had gone from his face, and sin had set
the mark of the beast on him; he had become a savage; he had gone back
five thousand years, to the time when his cave-dwelling ancestors
hunted the aurochs and the sabre-toothed tiger. There was that in our
gaze which stilled the laughter in Rani's eyes, and she crept closer
to him, standing as if to cover him. His head drooped slowly forwards,
and the fingers of his hands opened and shut; he was fighting
something within himself.

"Send the woman away," I said. "You know why I have come," and I
pointed to the pistols on the fallen tree trunk.

Rani saw the gesture. Her glance shifted uneasily from one to the
other of us, and then rested on the weapons, and now, trembling with
an unknown fear, she clung to her man.

"Send her away. You hear." My own voice came to me as from a far
distance.

He put her aside gently, where she stood shivering in every limb, and
came forwards a step.

"I cannot," he said thickly, and speaking with an effort; "I
cannot--not with you----"

"I will force you to." I spoke calmly enough, but there was a red mist
before my eyes and a drumming in my ears. Fool that I was to think
that God would give His vengeance to my hands! And then I struck him
where he stood, struck him twice across the face, and with a cry like
that of a mad beast he was on me.

We were both strong men, and he was fighting for his life; but I--I
had the strength of ten then; all the pent-up rage of years was
roaring within me, and there was a pitiless hate in my heart. I would
kill him like the unclean thing he was should be killed. With all my
force I struck him again and again, and I felt as if something crashed
under the blow. We fell together and rose again, and with a mighty
effort I flung him from me. He staggered to his feet, his face white
and bleeding, his blue lips hissing curses. He was then facing me, his
back but a yard from the edge of the abyss, against which the mists
were beating like a grey sea. He read the meaning in my look, and made
one last straggle, one last rush for safety, but I hit him fair on the
forehead, and he threw up his arms with a gasp, staggered back a pace,
and was gone. Far below there sounded something like a dull thud and a
cry, and then all was still. Nelly was avenged.

It was all over. I could see nothing as I peered into the mist before
me, and then I was brought to myself by the sound of sudden sobbing,
and there was Rani stretched on the grass and plucking at the turf
like a mad thing. She was a woman after all, and, poor, wild waif of
the jungles, hers was no sin and no wrong. But her sobs and the agony
on her face brought on a sudden revulsion and a horror at my deed. It
was as sudden, as swift, as the tumult of passions which had driven me
to kill the man, and now the blackness of night had settled on my
soul. I made no attempt at speech with the woman, but silently took up
the pistols, gave one last shivering glance at the deep and at the
prostrate figure of Rani, and then fled through the forest, my one
thought to put miles between me and my deed. By the time I had found
the pony and mounted him I was able to reflect a little, and it was
with a guilty start that I realized there was a witness, and--and--But
the place was a lonely one. And Rani--would her word count against
mine? Never! And then I laughed shrilly and galloped on.

I reached the club just in time to dress for dinner. Strange! I could
not bear the thought of being alone--I who had lived for a year at a
time a solitary. I dressed in haste, and as I came out my servant
handed me my letters--the English mail had just come in, he said. I
would have flung them from me, but that the first letter in my hand
was in Mrs. Carstairs' writing. With a vague presentiment of evil I
opened and read. Nelly was ill, Nelly was dying. Some fool had told
her of John Mazarion, and had killed her as surely as with the stroke
of a knife. As I read, the lines blurred one into the other, and
something seemed to give way in my brain. I rose and staggered as one
drunken, and then--and then, strong man as I was, I fainted and
remember no more.

It was a long illness. I do not know what the doctors called it; but
they pulled me through, as they thought. It was another thing,
however, that cured me. I remember how, when my brain first righted
itself, the awful memory of Mazarion's end came back again and sat
over me like a dreadful vampire. Each whispered word of the nurses in
attendance on me, each noise I heard, seemed to presage the
announcement that my guilt was known. One day I asked the nurse
whether I had been delirious, and what I had said.

She flushed a little. She was a good woman, and an untruth was hateful
to her. Then she fenced:

"Oh, one always says strange things in delirium; but you're getting
quite strong now, and Captain Paget is coming to see you to-day. It
was he who found you insensible, and he has been as good as any ten of
us----"

"Paget--Paget found me?"

She put her finger to her lips and a cool hand on my eyes, and I
seemed to fall asleep.

How long I slept I cannot quite say, but I became conscious of
whispering voices in the room.

"There's no doubt about it, and it's his only chance, I think. Just
give him the news quietly when he awakes. Yes, he may have a glass of
port before."

I lay still, but trembling under my covers. It had come at last. Oh,
the shame of it! the sin of it!--I a common murderer. It was too much,
and I tried to start up, but fell back weakly, and saw Paget sitting
by the bed, smiling kindly at me.

"Not yet, old man--in a day or so. Take this port, will you?"

I drank it with an effort; but it warmed me and gave me strength.

"You're to be shipped home in a few days--lucky beggar! Wouldn't mind
getting ill myself if I could get leave."

I smiled in spite of myself.

"That's right. Feeling better, I see. We had another interesting
patient also, but he cleared out a week or so ago from hospital. It
was that fellow Mazarion. Remember him?"

"Mazarion!"

"Yes. Fell over the edge of a precipice and on to a ledge of rock. Got
his fall broken somehow by the branches of a tree, and the wild
raspberry bushes, or he'd have been in Kingdom Come--eh? What?"

"Thank God!" I felt a load lifted from my heart, the shadows had
passed from my soul. I lay back, my eyes closed and a peace upon me.
And then I prayed for the first time in many a long day, and whilst I
prayed I fell once more asleep. There came to me in that sleep a dream
of Nelly--of Nelly robed in white with a glory around her, and she
smiled and beckoned me to come.

Well, I was once more in England, and because she wished it I was
allowed to see Nelly. She lay on her cushions very pale and white, but
for the red spot on each cheek, and an unnatural brightness of the
eyes. I knew it was a matter of time, and all that we could do was to
wait and hope.

It came at last, one dreary evening, when the lamps were burning dimly
in the streets through the ceaseless, insistent drizzle. I cannot
linger over this or my heart would break. We stood by her, sad and
silent, waiting for the end. It was not long in coming. She had been
as it were asleep, when suddenly she awoke and her voice was strong
with the strength of death. She called to me:

"Mr. Thring, you know that story about John. Is--is it true?"

Oh, the chattering ape who had killed her! Her mother's eyes met mine;
but I could see nothing but Nelly--Nelly looking at me with a wistful
entreaty. I could not; right or wrong, I could not.

"It is not true, dear. He will come back to you."

"Say that again."

"He will come back to you, Nelly."

"He must follow," and she closed her eyes with a sweet smile on her
lips.

Then my dear's hand went out to clasp mine in thanks, and I held the
chill fingers in my grasp.

"Mother--kiss me. John--you will come," and she was gone.


                          *   *   *   *   *


I had stolen out of the house, leaving them with their dead. As I
closed the gate, and stepped on to the pavement a ragged figure came
out of the mist and, standing beside the lamp-post, looked towards the
house and the drawn blinds. The light fell on the wasted form and
haggard features. I could not mistake; it was John Mazarion.

I went up to him and touched him on the shoulder. He started back and
stared at me vacuously.

"She lies there dead," I said.

"Dead!"

"Ay, dead. She died with your name on her lips."

He looked at me stupidly. Then something like a sob burst from him,
and with bowed head and shambling steps he turned, and crossing the
road went from my life.



                               THE END.